The Creed
The
Apostles Creed |
The
Nicene Creed |
|
|
I
believe in God,
the Father almighty,
creator of heaven and earth. |
We
believe in one God,
the Father, the Almighty,
maker of heaven and earth,
and of all that is, seen and unseen. |
I
believe in Jesus Christ,
his only Son, our Lord. |
We
believe in one Lord, Jesus Christ,
the only Son of God,
eternally begotten of the Father,
God from God, Light from Light,
true God from true God,
begotten, not made,
one in Being with the Father.
Through him all things were made.
For us men and for our salvation,
he came down from heaven: |
He
was conceived by the
power of the Holy Spirit
and born of the Virgin Mary. |
by
the power of the Holy Spirit
he was born of the Virgin Mary,
and became man. |
He
suffered under Pontius Pilate,
was crucified, died, and was buried.
He descended into hell. |
For
our sake he was crucified
under Pontius Pilate;
he suffered died and was buried. |
On
the third day he rose again. |
On
the third day he rose again
in fulfillment of the Scriptures; |
He
ascended into heaven
and is seated at the right hand of the Father.
He will come again to judge
the living and the dead |
he
ascended into heaven
and is seated at the right hand of the Father.
He will come again in glory
to judge the living and the dead,
and his kingdom will have no end. |
I
believe in the Holy Spirit,
the holy catholic Church,
the communion of saints,
the forgiveness of sins,
the resurrection of the body,
and the life everlasting.
Amen. |
We
believe in the Holy Spirit,
the Lord, the giver of life,
who proceeds from the
Father and the Son.
With the Father and the Son
he is worshipped and glorified.
He has spoken through the Prophets.
We believe in one holy
catholic and apostolic Church.
We acknowledge one baptism
for the forgiveness of sins.
We look for the resurrection of the dead,
and the life of the world to come.
Amen. |
SECTION TWO
THE PROFESSION OF THE CHRISTIAN FAITH
THE CREEDS
185 Whoever says "I believe" says "I
pledge myself to what we believe." Communion in faith
needs a common language of faith, normative for all and uniting all in
the same confession of faith.
186 From the beginning, the apostolic Church
expressed and handed on her faith in brief formula normative for all.1
But already very early on, the Church also wanted to gather the
essential elements of her faith into organic and articulated summaries,
intended especially for candidates for Baptism:
-
This synthesis of faith was not made to accord with human opinions,
but rather what was of the greatest importance was gathered from all
the Scriptures, to present the one teaching of the faith in its
entirety. And just as the mustard seed contains a great number of
branches in a tiny grain, so too this summary of faith encompassed
in a few words the whole knowledge of the true religion contained in
the Old and the New Testaments.2
187 Such syntheses are called "professions of
faith" since they summarize the faith that Christians profess. They
are called "creeds" on account of what is usually their first
word in Latin: credo ("I believe"). They are also
called "symbols of faith".
188 The Greek word symbolon meant half of a
broken object, for example, a seal presented as a token of recognition.
The broken parts were placed together to verify the bearer's identity.
The symbol of faith, then, is a sign of recognition and communion
between believers. Symbolon also means a gathering, collection
or summary. A symbol of faith is a summary of the principal truths of
the faith and therefore serves as the first and fundamental point of
reference for catechesis.
189 The first "profession of faith" is
made during Baptism. The symbol of faith is first and foremost the baptismal
creed. Since Baptism is given "in the name of the Father and
of the Son and of the Holy Spirit",3 the truths of faith
professed during Baptism are articulated in terms of their reference to
the three persons of the Holy Trinity.
190 And so the Creed is divided into three parts:
"the first part speaks of the first divine Person and the wonderful
work of creation; the next speaks of the second divine Person and the
mystery of his redemption of men; the final part speaks of the third
divine Person, the origin and source of our sanctification."4
These are "the three chapters of our [baptismal] seal".5
191 "These three parts are distinct although
connected with one another. According to a comparison often used by the
Fathers, we call them articles. Indeed, just as in our bodily
members there are certain articulations which distinguish and separate
them, so too in this profession of faith, the name articles has
justly and rightly been given to the truths we must believe particularly
and distinctly."6 In accordance with an ancient
tradition, already attested to by St. Ambrose, it is also customary to
reckon the articles of the Creed as twelve, thus symbolizing
the fullness of the apostolic faith by the number of the apostles.7
192 Through the centuries many professions or
symbols of faith have been articulated in response to the needs of the
different eras: the creeds of the different apostolic and ancient
Churches,8 e.g., the Quicumque, also called the
Athanasian Creed;9 the professions of faith of certain
Councils, such as Toledo, Lateran, Lyons, Trent;10 or the
symbols of certain popes, e.g., the Fides Damasi11
or the Credo of the People of God of Paul VI.12
193 None of the creeds from the different stages in
the Church's life can be considered superseded or irrelevant. They help
us today to attain and deepen the faith of all times by means of the
different summaries made of it.
Among all the creeds, two occupy a special place in the Church's life:
194 The Apostles' Creed is so called
because it is rightly considered to be a faithful summary of the
apostles' faith. It is the ancient baptismal symbol of the Church of
Rome. Its great authority arises from this fact: it is "the Creed
of the Roman Church, the See of Peter the first of the apostles, to
which he brought the common faith".13
195 The Niceno-Constantinopolitan or Nicene
Creed draws its great authority from the fact that it stems from
the first two ecumenical Councils (in 325 and 381). It remains common to
all the great Churches of both East and West to this day.
196 Our presentation of the faith will follow the
Apostles' Creed, which constitutes, as it were, "the oldest Roman
catechism". The presentation will be completed however by constant
references to the Nicene Creed, which is often more explicit and more
detailed.
197 As on the day of our Baptism, when our whole
life was entrusted to the "standard of teaching",14
let us embrace the Creed of our life-giving faith. To say the Credo with
faith is to enter into communion with God, Father, Son and Holy Spirit,
and also with the whole Church which transmits the faith to us and in
whose midst we believe:
-
This Creed is the spiritual seal, our heart's meditation and an
ever-present guardian; it is, unquestionably, the treasure of our
soul.15
CHAPTER ONE
I BELIEVE IN GOD THE FATHER
198 Our profession of faith begins with God,
for God is the First and the Last,1 the beginning and the end
of everything. The Credo begins with God the Father, for the
Father is the first divine person of the Most Holy Trinity; our Creed
begins with the creation of heaven and earth, for creation is the
beginning and the foundation of all God's works.
ARTICLE I
"I BELIEVE IN GOD THE FATHER ALMIGHTY, CREATOR OF HEAVEN AND
EARTH"
Paragraph 1. I Believe in God
199 "I believe in God": this first
affirmation of the Apostles' Creed is also the most fundamental. The
whole Creed speaks of God, and when it also speaks of man and of the
world it does so in relation to God. The other articles of the Creed all
depend on the first, just as the remaining Commandments make the first
explicit. The other articles help us to know God better as he revealed
himself progressively to men. "The faithful first profess their
belief in God."2
I. "I BELIEVE IN ONE GOD"
200 These are the words with which the
Niceno-Constantinopolitan Creed begins. The confession of God's oneness,
which has its roots in the divine revelation of the Old Covenant, is
inseparable from the profession of God's existence and is equally
fundamental. God is unique; there is only one God: "The Christian
faith confesses that God is one in nature, substance and essence."3
201 To Israel, his chosen, God revealed himself as
the only One: "Hear, O Israel: The LORD our God is one LORD; and
you shall love the LORD your God with all your heart, and with all your
soul, and with all your might."4 Through the prophets,
God calls Israel and all nations to turn to him, the one and only God:
"Turn to me and be saved, all the ends of the earth! For I am God,
and there is no other.. . To me every knee shall bow, every tongue shall
swear. 'Only in the LORD, it shall be said of me, are righteousness and
strength.'"5
202 Jesus himself affirms that God is "the one
Lord" whom you must love "with all your heart, and with all
your soul, and with all your mind, and with all your strength".6
At the same time Jesus gives us to understand that he himself is
"the Lord".7 To confess that Jesus is Lord is
distinctive of Christian faith. This is not contrary to belief in the
One God. Nor does believing in the Holy Spirit as "Lord and giver
of life" introduce any division into the One God:
-
We firmly believe and confess without reservation that there is
only one true God, eternal infinite (immensus) and unchangeable,
incomprehensible, almighty and ineffable, the Father and the Son and
the Holy Spirit; three persons indeed, but one essence, substance or
nature entirely simple.8
II. GOD REVEALS HIS NAME
203 God revealed himself to his people Israel by
making his name known to them. A name expresses a person's essence and
identity and the meaning of this person's life. God has a name; he is
not an anonymous force. To disclose one's name is to make oneself known
to others; in a way it is to hand oneself over by becoming accessible,
capable of being known more intimately and addressed personally.
204 God revealed himself progressively and under
different names to his people, but the revelation that proved to be the
fundamental one for both the Old and the New Covenants was the
revelation of the divine name to Moses in the theophany of the burning
bush, on the threshold of the Exodus and of the covenant on Sinai.
The living God
205 God calls Moses from the midst of a bush that
burns without being consumed: "I am the God of your father, the God
of Abraham, the God of Isaac, and the God of Jacob."9
God is the God of the fathers, the One who had called and guided the
patriarchs in their wanderings. He is the faithful and compassionate God
who remembers them and his promises; he comes to free their descendants
from slavery. He is the God who, from beyond space and time, can do this
and wills to do it, the God who will put his almighty power to work for
this plan.
"I Am who I Am"
-
Moses said to God, "If I come to the people of Israel and say
to them, 'The God of your fathers has sent me to you', and they ask
me, 'What is his name?' what shall I say to them?" God said to
Moses, "I AM WHO I AM." And he said, "Say this to the
people of Israel, 'I AM has sent me to you'. . . this is my name for
ever, and thus I am to be remembered throughout all
generations."10
206 In revealing his mysterious name, YHWH ("I
AM HE WHO IS", "I AM WHO AM" or "I AM WHO I
AM"), God says who he is and by what name he is to be called. This
divine name is mysterious just as God is mystery. It is at once a name
revealed and something like the refusal of a name, and hence it better
expresses God as what he is - infinitely above everything that we can
understand or say: he is the "hidden God", his name is
ineffable, and he is the God who makes himself close to men.11
207 By revealing his name God at the same time
reveals his faithfulness which is from everlasting to everlasting, valid
for the past ("I am the God of your father"), as for the
future ("I will be with you").12 God, who reveals
his name as "I AM", reveals himself as the God who is always
there, present to his people in order to save them.
208 Faced with God's fascinating and mysterious
presence, man discovers his own insignificance. Before the burning bush,
Moses takes off his sandals and veils his face in the presence of God's
holiness.13 Before the glory of the thrice-holy God, Isaiah
cries out: "Woe is me! I am lost; for I am a man of unclean
lips."14 Before the divine signs wrought by Jesus, Peter
exclaims: "Depart from me, for I am a sinful man, O Lord."15
But because God is holy, he can forgive the man who realizes that he is
a sinner before him: "I will not execute my fierce anger. . . for I
am God and not man, the Holy One in your midst."16 The
apostle John says likewise: "We shall. . . reassure our hearts
before him whenever our hearts condemn us; for God is greater than our
hearts, and he knows everything."17
209 Out of respect for the holiness of God, the
people of Israel do not pronounce his name. In the reading of Sacred
Scripture, the revealed name (YHWH) is replaced by the divine title
"LORD" (in Hebrew Adonai, in Greek Kyrios).
It is under this title that the divinity of Jesus will be acclaimed:
"Jesus is LORD."
"A God merciful and gracious"
210 After Israel's sin, when the people had turned
away from God to worship the golden calf, God hears Moses' prayer of
intercession and agrees to walk in the midst of an unfaithful people,
thus demonstrating his love.18 When Moses asks to see his
glory, God responds "I will make all my goodness pass before you,
and will proclaim before you my name 'the LORD' [YHWH]."19
Then the LORD passes before Moses and proclaims, "YHWH, YHWH, a God
merciful and gracious, slow to anger, and abounding in steadfast love
and faithfulness"; Moses then confesses that the LORD is a
forgiving God.20
211 The divine name, "I Am" or "He
Is", expresses God's faithfulness: despite the faithlessness of
men's sin and the punishment it deserves, he keeps "steadfast love
for thousands".21 By going so far as to give up his own
Son for us, God reveals that he is "rich in mercy".22
By giving his life to free us from sin, Jesus reveals that he himself
bears the divine name: "When you have lifted up the Son of man,
then you will realize that "I AM"."23
God alone IS
212 Over the centuries, Israel's faith was able to
manifest and deepen realization of the riches contained in the
revelation of the divine name. God is unique; there are no other gods
besides him.24 He transcends the world and history. He made
heaven and earth: "They will perish, but you endure; they will all
wear out like a garment....but you are the same, and your years have no
end."25 In God "there is no variation or shadow due
to change."26 God is "HE WHO IS", from
everlasting to everlasting, and as such remains ever faithful to himself
and to his promises.
213 The revelation of the ineffable name "I AM
WHO AM" contains then the truth that God alone IS. The Greek
Septuagint translation of the Hebrew Scriptures, and following it the
Church's Tradition, understood the divine name in this sense: God is the
fullness of Being and of every perfection, without origin and without
end. All creatures receive all that they are and have from him; but he
alone is his very being, and he is of himself everything that he is.
III. GOD, "HE WHO IS", IS TRUTH AND LOVE
214 God, "HE WHO IS", revealed himself to
Israel as the one "abounding in steadfast love and
faithfulness".27 These two terms express summarily the
riches of the divine name. In all his works God displays, not only his
kindness, goodness, grace and steadfast love, but also his
trustworthiness, constancy, faithfulness and truth. "I give thanks
to your name for your steadfast love and your faithfulness."28
He is the Truth, for "God is light and in him there is no
darkness"; "God is love", as the apostle John teaches.29
God is Truth
215 "The sum of your word is truth; and every
one of your righteous ordinances endures forever."30
"And now, O LORD God, you are God, and your words are true";31
this is why God's promises always come true.32 God is Truth
itself, whose words cannot deceive. This is why one can abandon oneself
in full trust to the truth and faithfulness of his word in all things.
The beginning of sin and of man's fall was due to a lie of the tempter
who induced doubt of God's word, kindness and faithfulness.
216 God's truth is his wisdom, which commands the
whole created order and governs the world.33 God, who alone
made heaven and earth, can alone impart true knowledge of every created
thing in relation to himself.34
217 God is also truthful when he reveals himself -
the teaching that comes from God is "true instruction".35
When he sends his Son into the world it will be "to bear witness to
the truth":36 "We know that the Son of God has come
and has given us understanding, to know him who is true."37
God is Love
218 In the course of its history, Israel was able to
discover that God had only one reason to reveal himself to them, a
single motive for choosing them from among all peoples as his special
possession: his sheer gratuitous love.38 And thanks to the
prophets Israel understood that it was again out of love that God never
stopped saving them and pardoning their unfaithfulness and sins.39
219 God's love for Israel is compared to a father's
love for his son. His love for his people is stronger than a mother's
for her children. God loves his people more than a bridegroom his
beloved; his love will be victorious over even the worst infidelities
and will extend to his most precious gift: "God so loved the world
that he gave his only Son."40
220 God's love is "everlasting":41
"For the mountains may depart and the hills be removed, but my
steadfast love shall not depart from you."42 Through
Jeremiah, God declares to his people, "I have loved you with an
everlasting love; therefore I have continued my faithfulness to
you."43
221 But St. John goes even further when he affirms
that "God is love":44 God's very being is love. By
sending his only Son and the Spirit of Love in the fullness of time, God
has revealed his innermost secret:45 God himself is an
eternal exchange of love, Father, Son and Holy Spirit, and he has
destined us to share in that exchange.
IV. THE IMPLICATIONS OF FAITH IN ONE GOD
222 Believing in God, the only One, and loving him
with all our being has enormous consequences for our whole life.
223 It means coming to know God's greatness and
majesty: "Behold, God is great, and we know him not."46
Therefore, we must "serve God first".47
224 It means living in thanksgiving: if God
is the only One, everything we are and have comes from him: "What
have you that you did not receive?"48 "What shall I
render to the LORD for all his bounty to me?"49
225 It means knowing the unity and true dignity
of all men: everyone is made in the image and likeness of God.50
226 It means making good use of created things:
faith in God, the only One, leads us to use everything that is not God
only insofar as it brings us closer to him, and to detach ourselves from
it insofar as it turns us away from him:
-
My Lord and my God, take from me everything that distances me from
you.
My Lord and my God, give me everything that brings me closer to you.
My Lord and my God, detach me from myself to give my all to you.51
227 It means trusting God in every circumstance,
even in adversity. A prayer of St. Teresa of Jesus wonderfully expresses
this trust:
-
Let nothing trouble you / Let nothing frighten you
Everything passes / God never changes
Patience / Obtains all
Whoever has God / Wants for nothing
God alone is enough.52
IN BRIEF
228 "Hear, O Israel, the LORD our God is one
LORD..." (Dt 6:4; Mk 12:29). "The supreme being must be
unique, without equal. . . If God is not one, he is not God"
(Tertullian, Adv. Marc., 1, 3, 5: PL 2, 274).
229 Faith in God leads us to turn to him alone as
our first origin and our ultimate goal, and neither to prefer anything
to him nor to substitute anything for him.
230 Even when he reveals himself, God remains a
mystery beyond words: "If you understood him, it would not be
God" (St. Augustine, Sermo 52, 6, 16: PL 38, 360 and Sermo 117,
3, 5: PL 38, 663).
231 The God of our faith has revealed himself as HE
WHO IS; and he has made himself known as "abounding in steadfast
love and faithfulness" (Ex 34:6). God's very being is
Truth and Love.
Paragraph 2. The Father
I. "IN THE NAME OF THE FATHER AND OF THE SON AND OF THE
HOLY SPIRIT"
232 Christians are baptized "in the name of the
Father and of the Son and of the Holy Spirit"53 Before
receiving the sacrament, they respond to a three-part question when
asked to confess the Father, the Son and the Spirit: "I do."
"The faith of all Christians rests on the Trinity."54
233 Christians are baptized in the name of the Father
and of the Son and of the Holy Spirit: not in their names,55
for there is only one God, the almighty Father, his only Son and the
Holy Spirit: the Most Holy Trinity.
234 The mystery of the Most Holy Trinity is the central
mystery of Christian faith and life. It is the mystery of God in
himself. It is therefore the source of all the other mysteries of faith,
the light that enlightens them. It is the most fundamental and essential
teaching in the "hierarchy of the truths of faith".56
The whole history of salvation is identical with the history of the way
and the means by which the one true God, Father, Son and Holy Spirit,
reveals himself to men "and reconciles and unites with himself
those who turn away from sin".57
235 This paragraph expounds briefly (I) how the mystery of the
Blessed Trinity was revealed, (II) how the Church has articulated the
doctrine of the faith regarding this mystery, and (III) how, by the
divine missions of the Son and the Holy Spirit, God the Father fulfills
the "plan of his loving goodness" of creation, redemption and
sanctification.
236 The Fathers of the Church distinguish between theology (theologia)
and economy (oikonomia). "Theology" refers to the
mystery of God's inmost life within the Blessed Trinity and
"economy" to all the works by which God reveals himself and
communicates his life. Through the oikonomia the theologia is
revealed to us; but conversely, the theologia illuminates the
whole oikonomia. God's works reveal who he is in himself; the mystery of
his inmost being enlightens our understanding of all his works. So it
is, analogously, among human persons. A person discloses himself in his
actions, and the better we know a person, the better we understand his
actions.
237 The Trinity is a mystery of faith in the strict sense, one
of the "mysteries that are hidden in God, which can never be known
unless they are revealed by God".58 To be sure, God has
left traces of his Trinitarian being in his work of creation and in his
Revelation throughout the Old Testament. But his inmost Being as Holy
Trinity is a mystery that is inaccessible to reason alone or even to
Israel's faith before the Incarnation of God's Son and the sending of
the Holy Spirit.
II. THE REVELATION OF GOD AS TRINITY
The Father revealed by the Son
238 Many religions invoke God as "Father". The deity
is often considered the "father of gods and of men". In
Israel, God is called "Father" inasmuch as he is Creator of
the world.59 Even more, God is Father because of the covenant
and the gift of the law to Israel, "his first-born son".60
God is also called the Father of the king of Israel. Most especially he
is "the Father of the poor", of the orphaned and the widowed,
who are under his loving protection.61
239 By calling God "Father", the language of faith
indicates two main things: that God is the first origin of everything
and transcendent authority; and that he is at the same time goodness and
loving care for all his children. God's parental tenderness can also be
expressed by the image of motherhood,62 which emphasizes
God's immanence, the intimacy between Creator and creature. The language
of faith thus draws on the human experience of parents, who are in a way
the first representatives of God for man. But this experience also tells
us that human parents are fallible and can disfigure the face of
fatherhood and motherhood. We ought therefore to recall that God
transcends the human distinction between the sexes. He is neither man
nor woman: he is God. He also transcends human fatherhood and
motherhood, although he is their origin and standard:63 no
one is father as God is Father.
240 Jesus revealed that God is Father in an unheard-of sense:
he is Father not only in being Creator; he is eternally Father in
relation to his only Son, who is eternally Son only in relation to his
Father: "No one knows the Son except the Father, and no one knows
the Father except the Son and any one to whom the Son chooses to reveal
him."64
241 For this reason the apostles confess Jesus to be the Word:
"In the beginning was the Word, and the Word was with God, and the
Word was God"; as "the image of the invisible God"; as
the "radiance of the glory of God and the very stamp of his
nature".65
242 Following this apostolic tradition, the Church confessed
at the first ecumenical council at Nicaea (325) that the Son is
"consubstantial" with the Father, that is, one only God with
him.66 The second ecumenical council, held at Constantinople
in 381, kept this expression in its formulation of the Nicene Creed and
confessed "the only-begotten Son of God, eternally begotten of the
Father, light from light, true God from true God, begotten not made,
consubstantial with the Father".67
The Father and the Son revealed by the Spirit
243 Before his Passover, Jesus announced the sending
of "another Paraclete" (Advocate), the Holy Spirit. At work
since creation, having previously "spoken through the
prophets", the Spirit will now be with and in the disciples, to
teach them and guide them "into all the truth".68
The Holy Spirit is thus revealed as another divine person with Jesus and
the Father.
244 The eternal origin of the Holy Spirit is revealed in his
mission in time. The Spirit is sent to the apostles and to the Church
both by the Father in the name of the Son, and by the Son in person,
once he had returned to the Father.69 The sending of the
person of the Spirit after Jesus' glorification70 reveals in
its fullness the mystery of the Holy Trinity.
245 The apostolic faith concerning the Spirit was confessed by
the second ecumenical council at Constantinople (381): "We believe
in the Holy Spirit, the Lord and giver of life, who proceeds from the
Father."71 By this confession, the Church recognizes the
Father as "the source and origin of the whole divinity".72
But the eternal origin of the Spirit is not unconnected with the Son's
origin: "The Holy Spirit, the third person of the Trinity, is God,
one and equal with the Father and the Son, of the same substance and
also of the same nature. . . Yet he is not called the Spirit of the
Father alone,. . . but the Spirit of both the Father and the Son."73
The Creed of the Church from the Council of Constantinople confesses:
"With the Father and the Son, he is worshipped and glorified."74
246 The Latin tradition of the Creed confesses that the Spirit
"proceeds from the Father and the Son (filioque)". The
Council of Florence in 1438 explains: "The Holy Spirit is eternally
from Father and Son; He has his nature and subsistence at once (simul)
from the Father and the Son. He proceeds eternally from both as from one
principle and through one spiration. . . . And, since the Father has
through generation given to the only-begotten Son everything that
belongs to the Father, except being Father, the Son has also eternally
from the Father, from whom he is eternally born, that the Holy Spirit
proceeds from the Son."75
247 The affirmation of the filioque does not appear in
the Creed confessed in 381 at Constantinople. But Pope St. Leo I,
following an ancient Latin and Alexandrian tradition, had already
confessed it dogmatically in 447,76 even before Rome, in 451
at the Council of Chalcedon, came to recognize and receive the Symbol of
381. The use of this formula in the Creed was gradually admitted into
the Latin liturgy (between the eighth and eleventh centuries). The
introduction of the filioque into the Niceno-Constantinopolitan Creed by
the Latin liturgy constitutes moreover, even today, a point of
disagreement with the Orthodox Churches.
248 At the outset the Eastern tradition expresses the Father's
character as first origin of the Spirit. By confessing the Spirit as he
"who proceeds from the Father", it affirms that he comes
from the Father through the Son.77 The Western
tradition expresses first the consubstantial communion between Father
and Son, by saying that the Spirit proceeds from the Father and the Son
(filioque). It says this, "legitimately and with good
reason",78 for the eternal order of the divine persons
in their consubstantial communion implies that the Father, as "the
principle without principle",79 is the first origin of
the Spirit, but also that as Father of the only Son, he is, with the
Son, the single principle from which the Holy Spirit proceeds.80
This legitimate complementarity, provided it does not become rigid, does
not affect the identity of faith in the reality of the same mystery
confessed.
III. THE HOLY TRINITY IN THE TEACHING OF THE FAITH
The formation of the Trinitarian dogma
249 From the beginning, the revealed truth of the
Holy Trinity has been at the very root of the Church's living faith,
principally by means of Baptism. It finds its expression in the rule of
baptismal faith, formulated in the preaching, catechesis and prayer of
the Church. Such formulations are already found in the apostolic
writings, such as this salutation taken up in the Eucharistic liturgy:
"The grace of the Lord Jesus Christ and the love of God and the
fellowship of the Holy Spirit be with you all."81
250 During the first centuries the Church sought to clarify
her Trinitarian faith, both to deepen her own understanding of the faith
and to defend it against the errors that were deforming it. This
clarification was the work of the early councils, aided by the
theological work of the Church Fathers and sustained by the Christian
people's sense of the faith.
251 In order to articulate the dogma of the Trinity, the
Church had to develop her own terminology with the help of certain
notions of philosophical origin: "substance",
"person" or "hypostasis", "relation" and
so on. In doing this, she did not submit the faith to human wisdom, but
gave a new and unprecedented meaning to these terms, which from then on
would be used to signify an ineffable mystery, "infinitely beyond
all that we can humanly understand".82
252 The Church uses (I) the term "substance"
(rendered also at times by "essence" or "nature") to
designate the divine being in its unity, (II) the term
"person" or "hypostasis" to designate the Father,
Son and Holy Spirit in the real distinction among them, and (III) the
term "relation" to designate the fact that their distinction
lies in the relationship of each to the others.
The dogma of the Holy Trinity
253 The Trinity is One. We do not confess
three Gods, but one God in three persons, the "consubstantial
Trinity".83 The divine persons do not share the one
divinity among themselves but each of them is God whole and entire:
"The Father is that which the Son is, the Son that which the Father
is, the Father and the Son that which the Holy Spirit is, i.e. by nature
one God."84 In the words of the Fourth Lateran Council
(1215), "Each of the persons is that supreme reality, viz., the
divine substance, essence or nature."85
254 The divine persons are really distinct from one another.
"God is one but not solitary."86
"Father", "Son", "Holy Spirit" are not
simply names designating modalities of the divine being, for they are
really distinct from one another: "He is not the Father who is the
Son, nor is the Son he who is the Father, nor is the Holy Spirit he who
is the Father or the Son."87 They are distinct from one
another in their relations of origin: "It is the Father who
generates, the Son who is begotten, and the Holy Spirit who
proceeds."88 The divine Unity is Triune.
255 The divine persons are relative to one another.
Because it does not divide the divine unity, the real distinction of the
persons from one another resides solely in the relationships which
relate them to one another: "In the relational names of the persons
the Father is related to the Son, the Son to the Father, and the Holy
Spirit to both. While they are called three persons in view of their
relations, we believe in one nature or substance."89
Indeed "everything (in them) is one where there is no opposition of
relationship."90 "Because of that unity the Father
is wholly in the Son and wholly in the Holy Spirit; the Son is wholly in
the Father and wholly in the Holy Spirit; the Holy Spirit is wholly in
the Father and wholly in the Son."91
256 St. Gregory of Nazianzus, also called "the
Theologian", entrusts this summary of Trinitarian faith to the
catechumens of Constantinople:
-
Above all guard for me this great deposit of faith for which I
live and fight, which I want to take with me as a companion, and
which makes me bear all evils and despise all pleasures: I mean the
profession of faith in the Father and the Son and the Holy Spirit. I
entrust it to you today. By it I am soon going to plunge you into
water and raise you up from it. I give it to you as the companion
and patron of your whole life. I give you but one divinity and
power, existing one in three, and containing the three in a distinct
way. Divinity without disparity of substance or nature, without
superior degree that raises up or inferior degree that casts down. .
. the infinite co-naturality of three infinites. Each person
considered in himself is entirely God. . . the three considered
together. . . I have not even begun to think of unity when the
Trinity bathes me in its splendor. I have not even begun to think of
the Trinity when unity grasps me. . .92
IV. THE DIVINE WORKS AND THE TRINITARIAN MISSIONS
257 "O blessed light, O Trinity and first
Unity!"93 God is eternal blessedness, undying life,
unfading light. God is love: Father, Son and Holy Spirit. God freely
wills to communicate the glory of his blessed life. Such is the
"plan of his loving kindness", conceived by the Father before
the foundation of the world, in his beloved Son: "He destined us in
love to be his sons" and "to be conformed to the image of his
Son", through "the spirit of sonship".94 This
plan is a "grace [which] was given to us in Christ Jesus before the
ages began", stemming immediately from Trinitarian love.95
It unfolds in the work of creation, the whole history of salvation after
the fall, and the missions of the Son and the Spirit, which are
continued in the mission of the Church.96
258 The whole divine economy is the common work of the three
divine persons. For as the Trinity has only one and the same natures so
too does it have only one and the same operation: "The Father, the
Son and the Holy Spirit are not three principles of creation but one
principle."97 However, each divine person performs the
common work according to his unique personal property. Thus the Church
confesses, following the New Testament, "one God and Father from
whom all things are, and one Lord Jesus Christ, through whom all things
are, and one Holy Spirit in whom all things are".98 It
is above all the divine missions of the Son's Incarnation and the gift
of the Holy Spirit that show forth the properties of the divine persons.
259 Being a work at once common and personal, the whole divine
economy makes known both what is proper to the divine persons, and their
one divine nature. Hence the whole Christian life is a communion with
each of the divine persons, without in any way separating them. Everyone
who glorifies the Father does so through the Son in the Holy Spirit;
everyone who follows Christ does so because the Father draws him and the
Spirit moves him.99
260 The ultimate end of the whole divine economy is the entry
of God's creatures into the perfect unity of the Blessed Trinity.100
But even now we are called to be a dwelling for the Most Holy Trinity:
"If a man loves me", says the Lord, "he will keep my
word, and my Father will love him, and we will come to him, and make our
home with him":101
-
O my God, Trinity whom I adore, help me forget myself entirely so
to establish myself in you, unmovable and peaceful as if my soul
were already in eternity. May nothing be able to trouble my peace or
make me leave you, O my unchanging God, but may each minute bring me
more deeply into your mystery! Grant my soul peace. Make it your
heaven, your beloved dwelling and the place of your rest. May I
never abandon you there, but may I be there, whole and entire,
completely vigilant in my faith, entirely adoring, and wholly given
over to your creative action.102
IN BRIEF
261 The mystery of the Most Holy Trinity
is the central mystery of the Christian faith and of Christian life. God
alone can make it known to us by revealing himself as Father, Son and
Holy Spirit.
262 The Incarnation of God's Son reveals that God is the
eternal Father and that the Son is consubstantial with the Father, which
means that, in the Father and with the Father the Son is one and the
same God.
263 The mission of the Holy Spirit, sent by the Father in the
name of the Son (Jn 14:26) and by the Son "from the
Father" (Jn 15:26), reveals that, with them, the Spirit is
one and the same God. "With the Father and the Son he is worshipped
and glorified" (Nicene Creed).
264 "The Holy Spirit proceeds from the Father as the
first principle and, by the eternal gift of this to the Son, from the
communion of both the Father and the Son" (St. Augustine, De
Trin. 15, 26, 47: PL 42, 1095).
265 By the grace of Baptism "in the name of the Father
and of the Son and of the Holy Spirit", we are called to share in
the life of the Blessed Trinity, here on earth in the obscurity of
faith, and after death in eternal light (cf. Paul VI, CPG § 9).
266 "Now this is the Catholic faith: We worship one God
in the Trinity and the Trinity in unity, without either confusing the
persons or dividing the substance; for the person of the Father is one,
the Son's is another, the Holy Spirit's another; but the Godhead of the
Father, Son and Holy Spirit is one, their glory equal, their majesty
coeternal" (Athanasian Creed: DS 75; ND 16).
267 Inseparable in what they are, the divine persons are also
inseparable in what they do. But within the single divine operation each
shows forth what is proper to him in the Trinity, especially in the
divine missions of the Son's Incarnation and the gift of the Holy
Spirit.
Paragraph 3. The Almighty
268 Of all the divine attributes, only God's
omnipotence is named in the Creed: to confess this power has great
bearing on our lives. We believe that his might is universal,
for God who created everything also rules everything and can do
everything. God's power is loving, for he is our Father, and mysterious,
for only faith can discern it when it "is made perfect in
weakness".103
"He does whatever he pleases"104
269 The Holy Scriptures repeatedly confess the
universal power of God. He is called the "Mighty One of
Jacob", the "LORD of hosts", the "strong and
mighty" one. If God is almighty "in heaven and on earth",
it is because he made them.105 Nothing is impossible with
God, who disposes his works according to his will.106 He is
the Lord of the universe, whose order he established and which remains
wholly subject to him and at his disposal. He is master of history,
governing hearts and events in keeping with his will: "It is always
in your power to show great strength, and who can withstand the strength
of your arm?107
"You are merciful to all, for you can do all
things"108
270 God is the Father Almighty, whose
fatherhood and power shed light on one another: God reveals his fatherly
omnipotence by the way he takes care of our needs; by the filial
adoption that he gives us ("I will be a father to you, and you
shall be my sons and daughters, says the Lord Almighty"):109
finally by his infinite mercy, for he displays his power at its height
by freely forgiving sins.
271 God's almighty power is in no way arbitrary:
"In God, power, essence, will, intellect, wisdom, and justice are
all identical. Nothing therefore can be in God's power which could not
be in his just will or his wise intellect."110
The mystery of God's apparent powerlessness
272 Faith in God the Father Almighty can be put to
the test by the experience of evil and suffering. God can sometimes seem
to be absent and incapable of stopping evil. But in the most mysterious
way God the Father has revealed his almighty power in the voluntary
humiliation and Resurrection of his Son, by which he conquered evil.
Christ crucified is thus "the power of God and the wisdom of God.
For the foolishness of God is wiser than men, and the weakness of God is
stronger than men."111 It is in Christ's Resurrection
and exaltation that the Father has shown forth "the immeasurable
greatness of his power in us who believe".112
273 Only faith can embrace the mysterious ways of
God's almighty power. This faith glories in its weaknesses in order to
draw to itself Christ's power.113 The Virgin Mary is the
supreme model of this faith, for she believed that "nothing will be
impossible with God", and was able to magnify the Lord: "For
he who is mighty has done great things for me, and holy is his
name."114
274 "Nothing is more apt to confirm our faith
and hope than holding it fixed in our minds that nothing is impossible
with God. Once our reason has grasped the idea of God's almighty power,
it will easily and without any hesitation admit everything that [the
Creed] will afterwards propose for us to believe - even if they be great
and marvelous things, far above the ordinary laws of nature."115
IN BRIEF
275 With Job, the just man, we confess: "I know
that you can do all things, and that no purpose of yours can be
thwarted" (Job 42:2).
276 Faithful to the witness of Scripture, the Church
often addresses her prayer to the "almighty and eternal God"
("omnipotens sempiterne Deus. .."), believing firmly that
"nothing will be impossible with God" (Gen 18:14; Lk
1:37; Mt 19:26).
277 God shows forth his almighty power by converting
us from our sins and restoring us to his friendship by grace. "God,
you show your almighty power above all in your mercy and forgiveness. .
." (Roman Missal, 26th Sunday, Opening Prayer).
278 If we do not believe that God's love is
almighty, how can we believe that the Father could create us, the Son
redeem us and the Holy Spirit sanctify us?
Paragraph 4. The Creator
279 "In the beginning God created the heavens
and the earth."116 Holy Scripture begins with these
solemn words. The profession of faith takes them up when it confesses
that God the Father almighty is "Creator of heaven and earth"
(Apostles' Creed), "of all that is, seen and unseen" (Nicene
Creed). We shall speak first of the Creator, then of creation and
finally of the fall into sin from which Jesus Christ, the Son of God,
came to raise us up again.
280 Creation is the foundation of "all God's saving
plans," the "beginning of the history of salvation"117
that culminates in Christ. Conversely, the mystery of Christ casts
conclusive light on the mystery of creation and reveals the end for
which "in the beginning God created the heavens and the
earth": from the beginning, God envisaged the glory of the new
creation in Christ.118
281 And so the readings of the Easter Vigil, the celebration
of the new creation in Christ, begin with the creation account; likewise
in the Byzantine liturgy, the account of creation always constitutes the
first reading at the vigils of the great feasts of the Lord. According
to ancient witnesses the instruction of catechumens for Baptism followed
the same itinerary.119
I. CATECHESIS ON CREATION
282 Catechesis on creation is of major importance.
It concerns the very foundations of human and Christian life: for it
makes explicit the response of the Christian faith to the basic question
that men of all times have asked themselves:120 "Where
do we come from?" "Where are we going?" "What is our
origin?" "What is our end?" "Where does everything
that exists come from and where is it going?" The two questions,
the first about the origin and the second about the end, are
inseparable. They are decisive for the meaning and orientation of our
life and actions.
283 The question about the origins of the world and of man has
been the object of many scientific studies which have splendidly
enriched our knowledge of the age and dimensions of the cosmos, the
development of life-forms and the appearance of man. These discoveries
invite us to even greater admiration for the greatness of the Creator,
prompting us to give him thanks for all his works and for the
understanding and wisdom he gives to scholars and researchers. With
Solomon they can say: "It is he who gave me unerring knowledge of
what exists, to know the structure of the world and the activity of the
elements. . . for wisdom, the fashioner of all things, taught me."121
284 The great interest accorded to these studies is strongly
stimulated by a question of another order, which goes beyond the proper
domain of the natural sciences. It is not only a question of knowing
when and how the universe arose physically, or when man appeared, but
rather of discovering the meaning of such an origin: is the universe
governed by chance, blind fate, anonymous necessity, or by a
transcendent, intelligent and good Being called "God"? And if
the world does come from God's wisdom and goodness, why is there evil?
Where does it come from? Who is responsible for it? Is there any
liberation from it?
285 Since the beginning the Christian faith has been
challenged by responses to the question of origins that differ from its
own. Ancient religions and cultures produced many myths concerning
origins. Some philosophers have said that everything is God, that the
world is God, or that the development of the world is the development of
God (Pantheism). Others have said that the world is a necessary
emanation arising from God and returning to him. Still others have
affirmed the existence of two eternal principles, Good and Evil, Light
and Darkness, locked, in permanent conflict (Dualism, Manichaeism).
According to some of these conceptions, the world (at least the physical
world) is evil, the product of a fall, and is thus to be rejected or
left behind (Gnosticism). Some admit that the world was made by God, but
as by a watch-maker who, once he has made a watch, abandons it to itself
(Deism). Finally, others reject any transcendent origin for the world,
but see it as merely the interplay of matter that has always existed
(Materialism). All these attempts bear witness to the permanence and
universality of the question of origins. This inquiry is distinctively
human.
286 Human intelligence is surely already capable of finding a
response to the question of origins. The existence of God the Creator
can be known with certainty through his works, by the light of human
reason,122 even if this knowledge is often obscured and
disfigured by error. This is why faith comes to confirm and enlighten
reason in the correct understanding of this truth: "By faith we
understand that the world was created by the word of God, so that what
is seen was made out of things which do not appear."123
287 The truth about creation is so important for all of human
life that God in his tenderness wanted to reveal to his People
everything that is salutary to know on the subject. Beyond the natural
knowledge that every man can have of the Creator,124 God
progressively revealed to Israel the mystery of creation. He who chose
the patriarchs, who brought Israel out of Egypt, and who by choosing
Israel created and formed it, this same God reveals himself as the One
to whom belong all the peoples of the earth, and the whole earth itself;
he is the One who alone "made heaven and earth".125
288 Thus the revelation of creation is inseparable from the
revelation and forging of the covenant of the one God with his People.
Creation is revealed as the first step towards this covenant, the first
and universal witness to God's all-powerful love.126 And so,
the truth of creation is also expressed with growing vigor in the
message of the prophets, the prayer of the psalms and the liturgy, and
in the wisdom sayings of the Chosen People.127
289 Among all the Scriptural texts about creation, the first
three chapters of Genesis occupy a unique place. From a literary
standpoint these texts may have had diverse sources. The inspired
authors have placed them at the beginning of Scripture to express in
their solemn language the truths of creation - its origin and its end in
God, its order and goodness, the vocation of man, and finally the drama
of sin and the hope of salvation. Read in the light of Christ, within
the unity of Sacred Scripture and in the living Tradition of the Church,
these texts remain the principal source for catechesis on the mysteries
of the "beginning": creation, fall, and promise of salvation.
II. CREATION - WORK OF THE HOLY TRINITY
290 "In the beginning God created the heavens
and the earth":128 three things are affirmed in these
first words of Scripture: the eternal God gave a beginning to all that
exists outside of himself; he alone is Creator (the verb
"create" - Hebrew bara - always has God for its
subject). The totality of what exists (expressed by the formula
"the heavens and the earth") depends on the One who gives it
being.
291 "In the beginning was the Word. . . and the Word was
God. . . all things were made through him, and without him was not
anything made that was made."129 The New Testament
reveals that God created everything by the eternal Word, his beloved
Son. In him "all things were created, in heaven and on earth.. .
all things were created through him and for him. He is before all
things, and in him all things hold together."130 The
Church's faith likewise confesses the creative action of the Holy
Spirit, the "giver of life", "the Creator Spirit" (Veni,
Creator Spiritus), the "source of every good".131
292 The Old Testament suggests and the New Covenant reveals
the creative action of the Son and the Spirit,132 inseparably
one with that of the Father. This creative co-operation is clearly
affirmed in the Church's rule of faith: "There exists but one God.
. . he is the Father, God, the Creator, the author, the giver of order.
He made all things by himself, that is, by his Word and by his
Wisdom", "by the Son and the Spirit" who, so to speak,
are "his hands".133 Creation is the common work of
the Holy Trinity.
III. "THE WORLD WAS CREATED FOR THE GLORY OF GOD"
293 Scripture and Tradition never cease to teach and
celebrate this fundamental truth: "The world was made for the glory
of God."134 St. Bonaventure explains that God created
all things "not to increase his glory, but to show it forth and to
communicate it",135 for God has no other reason for
creating than his love and goodness: "Creatures came into existence
when the key of love opened his hand."136 The First
Vatican Council explains:
-
This one, true God, of his own goodness and "almighty
power", not for increasing his own beatitude, nor for attaining
his perfection, but in order to manifest this perfection through the
benefits which he bestows on creatures, with absolute freedom of
counsel "and from the beginning of time, made out of nothing
both orders of creatures, the spiritual and the corporeal. . ."137
294 The glory of God consists in the realization of
this manifestation and communication of his goodness, for which the
world was created. God made us "to be his sons through Jesus
Christ, according to the purpose of his will, to the praise of his
glorious grace",138 for "the glory of God is
man fully alive; moreover man's life is the vision of God: if God's
revelation through creation has already obtained life for all the beings
that dwell on earth, how much more will the Word's manifestation of the
Father obtain life for those who see God."139 The
ultimate purpose of creation is that God "who is the creator of all
things may at last become "all in all", thus simultaneously
assuring his own glory and our beatitude."140
IV. THE MYSTERY OF CREATION
God creates by wisdom and love
295 We believe that God created the world according
to his wisdom.141 It is not the product of any necessity
whatever, nor of blind fate or chance. We believe that it proceeds from
God's free will; he wanted to make his creatures share in his being,
wisdom and goodness: "For you created all things, and by your will
they existed and were created."142 Therefore the
Psalmist exclaims: "O LORD, how manifold are your works! In wisdom
you have made them all"; and "The LORD is good to all, and his
compassion is over all that he has made."143
God creates "out of nothing"
296 We believe that God needs no pre-existent thing
or any help in order to create, nor is creation any sort of necessary
emanation from the divine substance.144 God creates freely
"out of nothing":145
-
If God had drawn the world from pre-existent matter, what would be
so extraordinary in that? A human artisan makes from a given
material whatever he wants, while God shows his power by starting
from nothing to make all he wants.146
297 Scripture bears witness to faith in creation "out of
nothing" as a truth full of promise and hope. Thus the mother of
seven sons encourages them for martyrdom:
-
I do not know how you came into being in my womb. It was not I who
gave you life and breath, nor I who set in order the elements within
each of you. Therefore the Creator of the world, who shaped the
beginning of man and devised the origin of all things, will in his
mercy give life and breath back to you again, since you now forget
yourselves for the sake of his laws. . . Look at the heaven and the
earth and see everything that is in them, and recognize that God did
not make them out of things that existed. Thus also mankind comes
into being.147
298 Since God could create everything out of nothing, he can
also, through the Holy Spirit, give spiritual life to sinners by
creating a pure heart in them,148 and bodily life to the dead
through the Resurrection. God "gives life to the dead and calls
into existence the things that do not exist."149 And
since God was able to make light shine in darkness by his Word, he can
also give the light of faith to those who do not yet know him.150
God creates an ordered and good world
299 Because God creates through wisdom, his creation
is ordered: "You have arranged all things by measure and number and
weight."151 The universe, created in and by the eternal
Word, the "image of the invisible God", is destined for and
addressed to man, himself created in the "image of God" and
called to a personal relationship with God.152 Our human
understanding, which shares in the light of the divine intellect, can
understand what God tells us by means of his creation, though not
without great effort and only in a spirit of humility and respect before
the Creator and his work.153 Because creation comes forth
from God's goodness, it shares in that goodness - "And God saw that
it was good. . . very good"154- for God willed creation
as a gift addressed to man, an inheritance destined for and entrusted to
him. On many occasions the Church has had to defend the goodness of
creation, including that of the physical world.155
God transcends creation and is present to it.
300 God is infinitely greater than all his works:
"You have set your glory above the heavens."156
Indeed, God's "greatness is unsearchable".157 But
because he is the free and sovereign Creator, the first cause of all
that exists, God is present to his creatures' inmost being: "In him
we live and move and have our being."158 In the words of
St. Augustine, God is "higher than my highest and more inward than
my innermost self".159
God upholds and sustains creation.
301 With creation, God does not abandon his
creatures to themselves. He not only gives them being and existence, but
also, and at every moment, upholds and sustains them in being, enables
them to act and brings them to their final end. Recognizing this utter
dependence with respect to the Creator is a source of wisdom and
freedom, of joy and confidence:
-
For you love all things that exist, and detest none of the things
that you have made; for you would not have made anything if you had
hated it. How would anything have endured, if you had not willed it?
Or how would anything not called forth by you have been preserved?
You spare all things, for they are yours, O Lord, you who love the
living.160
V. GOD CARRIES OUT HIS PLAN: DIVINE PROVIDENCE
302 Creation has its own goodness and proper perfection, but
it did not spring forth complete from the hands of the Creator. The
universe was created "in a state of journeying" (in statu
viae) toward an ultimate perfection yet to be attained, to which God
has destined it. We call "divine providence" the dispositions
by which God guides his creation toward this perfection:
-
By his providence God protects and governs all things which he has
made, "reaching mightily from one end of the earth to the
other, and ordering all things well". For "all are open
and laid bare to his eyes", even those things which are yet to
come into existence through the free action of creatures.161
303 The witness of Scripture is unanimous that the solicitude
of divine providence is concrete and immediate; God cares for all, from
the least things to the great events of the world and its history. The
sacred books powerfully affirm God's absolute sovereignty over the
course of events: "Our God is in the heavens; he does whatever he
pleases."162 And so it is with Christ, "who opens
and no one shall shut, who shuts and no one opens".163
As the book of Proverbs states: "Many are the plans in the mind of
a man, but it is the purpose of the LORD that will be established."164
304 And so we see the Holy Spirit, the principal author of
Sacred Scripture, often attributing actions to God without mentioning
any secondary causes. This is not a "primitive mode of
speech", but a profound way of recalling God's primacy and absolute
Lordship over history and the world,165 and so of educating
his people to trust in him. The prayer of the Psalms is the great school
of this trust.166
305 Jesus asks for childlike abandonment to the providence of
our heavenly Father who takes care of his children's smallest needs:
"Therefore do not be anxious, saying, "What shall we
eat?" or "What shall we drink?". . . Your heavenly Father
knows that you need them all. But seek first his kingdom and his
righteousness, and all these things shall be yours as well."167
Providence and secondary causes
306 God is the sovereign master of his plan. But to
carry it out he also makes use of his creatures' co-operation. This use
is not a sign of weakness, but rather a token of almighty God's
greatness and goodness. For God grants his creatures not only their
existence, but also the dignity of acting on their own, of being causes
and principles for each other, and thus of co-operating in the
accomplishment of his plan.
307 To human beings God even gives the power of freely sharing
in his providence by entrusting them with the responsibility of
"subduing" the earth and having dominion over it.168
God thus enables men to be intelligent and free causes in order to
complete the work of creation, to perfect its harmony for their own good
and that of their neighbors. Though often unconscious collaborators with
God's will, they can also enter deliberately into the divine plan by
their actions, their prayers and their sufferings.169 They
then fully become "God's fellow workers" and co-workers for
his kingdom.170
308 The truth that God is at work in all the actions of his
creatures is inseparable from faith in God the Creator. God is the first
cause who operates in and through secondary causes: "For God is at
work in you, both to will and to work for his good pleasure."171
Far from diminishing the creature's dignity, this truth enhances it.
Drawn from nothingness by God's power, wisdom and goodness, it can do
nothing if it is cut off from its origin, for "without a Creator
the creature vanishes."172 Still less can a creature
attain its ultimate end without the help of God's grace.173
Providence and the scandal of evil.
309 If God the Father almighty, the Creator of the
ordered and good world, cares for all his creatures, why does evil
exist? To this question, as pressing as it is unavoidable and as painful
as it is mysterious, no quick answer will suffice. Only Christian faith
as a whole constitutes the answer to this question: the goodness of
creation, the drama of sin and the patient love of God who comes to meet
man by his covenants, the redemptive Incarnation of his Son, his gift of
the Spirit, his gathering of the Church, the power of the sacraments and
his call to a blessed life to which free creatures are invited to
consent in advance, but from which, by a terrible mystery, they can also
turn away in advance. There is not a single aspect of the Christian
message that is not in part an answer to the question of evil.
310 But why did God not create a world so perfect that no evil
could exist in it? With infinite power God could always create something
better.174 But with infinite wisdom and goodness God freely
willed to create a world "in a state of journeying" towards
its ultimate perfection. In God's plan this process of becoming involves
the appearance of certain beings and the disappearance of others, the
existence of the more perfect alongside the less perfect, both
constructive and destructive forces of nature. With physical good there
exists also physical evil as long as creation has not reached
perfection.175
311 Angels and men, as intelligent and free creatures, have to
journey toward their ultimate destinies by their free choice and
preferential love. They can therefore go astray. Indeed, they have
sinned. Thus has moral evil, incommensurably more harmful than
physical evil, entered the world. God is in no way, directly or
indirectly, the cause of moral evil.176 He permits it,
however, because he respects the freedom of his creatures and,
mysteriously, knows how to derive good from it:
-
For almighty God. . ., because he is supremely good, would never
allow any evil whatsoever to exist in his works if he were not so
all-powerful and good as to cause good to emerge from evil itself.177
312 In time we can discover that God in his almighty
providence can bring a good from the consequences of an evil, even a
moral evil, caused by his creatures: "It was not you", said
Joseph to his brothers, "who sent me here, but God. . . You meant
evil against me; but God meant it for good, to bring it about that many
people should be kept alive."178 From the greatest moral
evil ever committed - the rejection and murder of God's only Son, caused
by the sins of all men - God, by his grace that "abounded all the
more",179 brought the greatest of goods: the
glorification of Christ and our redemption. But for all that, evil never
becomes a good.
313 "We know that in everything God works for good for
those who love him."180 The constant witness of the
saints confirms this truth:
-
St. Catherine of Siena said to "those who are scandalized and
rebel against what happens to them": "Everything comes
from love, all is ordained for the salvation of man, God does
nothing without this goal in mind."181
St. Thomas More, shortly before his martyrdom, consoled his
daughter: "Nothing can come but that that God wills. And I make
me very sure that whatsoever that be, seem it never so bad in sight,
it shall indeed be the best."182
Dame Julian of Norwich: "Here I was taught by the grace of
God that I should steadfastly keep me in the faith... and that at
the same time I should take my stand on and earnestly believe in
what our Lord shewed in this time - that 'all manner [of] thing
shall be well.'"183
314 We firmly believe that God is master of the world and of
its history. But the ways of his providence are often unknown to us.
Only at the end, when our partial knowledge ceases, when we see God
"face to face",184 will we fully know the ways by
which - even through the dramas of evil and sin - God has guided his
creation to that definitive sabbath rest185 for which he
created heaven and earth.
IN BRIEF
315 In the creation of the world and of man, God gave the
first and universal witness to his almighty love and his wisdom, the
first proclamation of the "plan of his loving goodness", which
finds its goal in the new creation in Christ.
316 Though the work of creation is attributed to the Father in
particular, it is equally a truth of faith that the Father, Son and Holy
Spirit together are the one, indivisible principle of creation.
317 God alone created the universe, freely, directly and
without any help.
318 No creature has the infinite power necessary to
"create" in the proper sense of the word, that is, to produce
and give being to that which had in no way possessed it (to call into
existence "out of nothing") (cf DS 3624).
319 God created the world to show forth and communicate his
glory. That his creatures should share in his truth, goodness and beauty
- this is the glory for which God created them.
320 God created the universe and keeps it in existence by his
Word, the Son "upholding the universe by his word of power" (Heb
1:3), and by his Creator Spirit, the giver of life.
321 Divine providence consists of the dispositions by which
God guides all his creatures with wisdom and love to their ultimate end.
322 Christ invites us to filial trust in the providence of our
heavenly Father (cf. Mt 6:26-34), and St. Peter the apostle
repeats: "Cast all your anxieties on him, for he cares about
you" (I Pt 5:7; cf. Ps 55:23).
323 Divine providence works also through the actions of
creatures. To human beings God grants the ability to cooperate freely
with his plans.
324 The fact that God permits physical and even moral evil is
a mystery that God illuminates by his Son Jesus Christ who died and rose
to vanquish evil. Faith gives us the certainty that God would not permit
an evil if he did not cause a good to come from that very evil, by ways
that we shall fully know only in eternal life.
Paragraph 5. Heaven and Earth
325 The Apostles' Creed professes that God is
"creator of heaven and earth". The Nicene Creed makes it
explicit that this profession includes "all that is, seen and
unseen".
326 The Scriptural expression "heaven and
earth" means all that exists, creation in its entirety. It also
indicates the bond, deep within creation, that both unites heaven and
earth and distinguishes the one from the other: "the earth" is
the world of men, while "heaven" or "the heavens"
can designate both the firmament and God's own "place" -
"our Father in heaven" and consequently the "heaven"
too which is eschatological glory. Finally, "heaven" refers to
the saints and the "place" of the spiritual creatures, the
angels, who surround God.186
327 The profession of faith of the Fourth Lateran
Council (1215) affirms that God "from the beginning of time made at
once (simul) out of nothing both orders of creatures, the
spiritual and the corporeal, that is, the angelic and the earthly, and
then (deinde) the human creature, who as it were shares in both
orders, being composed of spirit and body."187
I. THE ANGELS
The existence of angels - a truth of faith
328 The existence of the spiritual, non-corporeal
beings that Sacred Scripture usually calls "angels" is a truth
of faith. The witness of Scripture is as clear as the unanimity of
Tradition.
Who are they?
329 St. Augustine says: "'Angel' is the name of
their office, not of their nature. If you seek the name of their nature,
it is 'spirit'; if you seek the name of their office, it is 'angel':
from what they are, 'spirit', from what they do, 'angel.'"188
With their whole beings the angels are servants and messengers
of God. Because they "always behold the face of my Father who is in
heaven" they are the "mighty ones who do his word, hearkening
to the voice of his word".189
330 As purely spiritual creatures angels
have intelligence and will: they are personal and immortal creatures,
surpassing in perfection all visible creatures, as the splendor of their
glory bears witness.190
Christ "with all his angels"
331 Christ is the center of the angelic world. They
are his angels: "When the Son of man comes in his glory,
and all the angels with him. . "191 They belong to him
because they were created through and for him:
"for in him all things were created in heaven and on earth, visible
and invisible, whether thrones or dominions or principalities or
authorities - all things were created through him and for him."192
They belong to him still more because he has made them messengers of his
saving plan: "Are they not all ministering spirits sent forth to
serve, for the sake of those who are to obtain salvation?"193
332 Angels have been present since creation and
throughout the history of salvation, announcing this salvation from afar
or near and serving the accomplishment of the divine plan: they closed
the earthly paradise; protected Lot; saved Hagar and her child; stayed
Abraham's hand; communicated the law by their ministry; led the People
of God; announced births and callings; and assisted the prophets, just
to cite a few examples.194 Finally, the angel Gabriel
announced the birth of the Precursor and that of Jesus himself.195
333 From the Incarnation to the Ascension, the life
of the Word incarnate is surrounded by the adoration and service of
angels. When God "brings the firstborn into the world, he says:
'Let all God's angels worship him.'"196 Their song of
praise at the birth of Christ has not ceased resounding in the Church's
praise: "Glory to God in the highest!"197 They
protect Jesus in his infancy, serve him in the desert, strengthen him in
his agony in the garden, when he could have been saved by them from the
hands of his enemies as Israel had been.198 Again, it is the
angels who "evangelize" by proclaiming the Good News of
Christ's Incarnation and Resurrection.199 They will be
present at Christ's return, which they will announce, to serve at his
judgement.200
The angels in the life of the Church
334 In the meantime, the whole life of the Church
benefits from the mysterious and powerful help of angels.201
335 In her liturgy, the Church joins with the angels
to adore the thrice-holy God. She invokes their assistance (in the
funeral liturgy's In Paradisum deducant te angeli. .
.["May the angels lead you into Paradise. . ."]). Moreover, in
the "Cherubic Hymn" of the Byzantine Liturgy, she celebrates
the memory of certain angels more particularly (St. Michael, St.
Gabriel, St. Raphael, and the guardian angels).
336 From its beginning until death, human life is
surrounded by their watchful care and intercession.202
"Beside each believer stands an angel as protector and shepherd
leading him to life."203 Already here on earth the
Christian life shares by faith in the blessed company of angels and men
united in God.
II. THE VISIBLE WORLD
337 God himself created the visible world in all its
richness, diversity and order. Scripture presents the work of the
Creator symbolically as a succession of six days of divine
"work", concluded by the "rest" of the seventh day.204
On the subject of creation, the sacred text teaches the truths revealed
by God for our salvation,205 permitting us to "recognize
the inner nature, the value and the ordering of the whole of creation to
the praise of God."206
338 Nothing exists that does not owe its
existence to God the Creator. The world began when God's word drew
it out of nothingness; all existent beings, all of nature, and all human
history are rooted in this primordial event, the very genesis by which
the world was constituted and time begun.207
339 Each creature possesses its own particular
goodness and perfection. For each one of the works of the "six
days" it is said: "And God saw that it was good."
"By the very nature of creation, material being is endowed with its
own stability, truth and excellence, its own order and laws."208
Each of the various creatures, willed in its own being, reflects in its
own way a ray of God's infinite wisdom and goodness. Man must therefore
respect the particular goodness of every creature, to avoid any
disordered use of things which would be in contempt of the Creator and
would bring disastrous consequences for human beings and their
environment.
340 God wills the interdependence of creatures.
The sun and the moon, the cedar and the little flower, the eagle and the
sparrow: the spectacle of their countless diversities and inequalities
tells us that no creature is self-sufficient. Creatures exist only in
dependence on each other, to complete each other, in the service of each
other.
341 The beauty of the universe: The order
and harmony of the created world results from the diversity of beings
and from the relationships which exist among them. Man discovers them
progressively as the laws of nature. They call forth the admiration of
scholars. The beauty of creation reflects the infinite beauty of the
Creator and ought to inspire the respect and submission of man's
intellect and will.
342 The hierarchy of creatures is expressed
by the order of the "six days", from the less perfect to the
more perfect. God loves all his creatures209 and takes care
of each one, even the sparrow. Nevertheless, Jesus said: "You are
of more value than many sparrows", or again: "Of how much more
value is a man than a sheep!"210
343 Man is the summit of the Creator's
work, as the inspired account expresses by clearly distinguishing the
creation of man from that of the other creatures.211
344 There is a solidarity among all creatures
arising from the fact that all have the same Creator and are all ordered
to his glory: May you be praised, O Lord, in all your creatures,
especially brother sun, by whom you give us light for the day; he is
beautiful, radiating great splendor, and offering us a symbol of you,
the Most High. . .
-
May you be praised, my Lord, for sister water, who is very useful
and humble, precious and chaste. . .
May you be praised, my Lord, for sister earth, our mother, who bears
and feeds us, and produces the variety of fruits and dappled flowers
and grasses. . .
Praise and bless my Lord, give thanks and serve him in all humility.212
345 The sabbath - the end of the work of the six
days. The sacred text says that "on the seventh day God
finished his work which he had done", that the "heavens and
the earth were finished", and that God "rested" on this
day and sanctified and blessed it.213 These inspired words
are rich in profitable instruction:
346 In creation God laid a foundation and
established laws that remain firm, on which the believer can rely with
confidence, for they are the sign and pledge of the unshakeable
faithfulness of God's covenant.214 For his part man must
remain faithful to this foundation, and respect the laws which the
Creator has written into it.
347 Creation was fashioned with a view to the
sabbath and therefore for the worship and adoration of God. Worship is
inscribed in the order of creation.215 As the rule of St.
Benedict says, nothing should take precedence over "the work of
God", that is, solemn worship.216 This indicates the
right order of human concerns.
348 The sabbath is at the heart of Israel's law. To
keep the commandments is to correspond to the wisdom and the will of God
as expressed in his work of creation.
349 The eighth day. But for us a new day
has dawned: the day of Christ's Resurrection. The seventh day completes
the first creation. The eighth day begins the new creation. Thus, the
work of creation culminates in the greater work of redemption. The first
creation finds its meaning and its summit in the new creation in Christ,
the splendor of which surpasses that of the first creation.217
IN BRIEF
350 Angels are spiritual creatures who glorify God
without ceasing and who serve his saving plans for other creatures:
"The angels work together for the benefit of us all" (St.
Thomas Aquinas, STh I, 114, 3, ad 3).
351 The angels surround Christ their Lord. They
serve him especially in the accomplishment of his saving mission to men.
352 The Church venerates the angels who help her on
her earthly pilgrimage and protect every human being.
353 God willed the diversity of his creatures and
their own particular goodness, their interdependence and their order. He
destined all material creatures for the good of the human race. Man, and
through him all creation, is destined for the glory of God.
354 Respect for laws inscribed in creation and the
relations which derive from the nature of things is a principle of
wisdom and a foundation for morality.
Paragraph 6. Man
355 "God created man in his own image, in the
image of God he created him, male and female he created them."218
Man occupies a unique place in creation: (I) he is "in the image of
God"; (II) in his own nature he unites the spiritual and material
worlds; (III) he is created "male and female"; (IV) God
established him in his friendship.
I. "IN THE IMAGE OF GOD"
356 Of all visible creatures only man is "able
to know and love his creator".219 He is "the only
creature on earth that God has willed for its own sake",220
and he alone is called to share, by knowledge and love, in God's own
life. It was for this end that he was created, and this is the
fundamental reason for his dignity:
-
What made you establish man in so great a dignity? Certainly the
incalculable love by which you have looked on your creature in
yourself! You are taken with love for her; for by love indeed you
created her, by love you have given her a being capable of tasting
your eternal Good.221
357 Being in the image of God the human individual
possesses the dignity of a person, who is not just something, but
someone. He is capable of self-knowledge, of self-possession and of
freely giving himself and entering into communion with other persons.
And he is called by grace to a covenant with his Creator, to offer him a
response of faith and love that no other creature can give in his stead.
358 God created everything for man,222
but man in turn was created to serve and love God and to offer all
creation back to him:
-
What is it that is about to be created, that enjoys such honor? It
is man that great and wonderful living creature, more precious in
the eyes of God than all other creatures! For him the heavens and
the earth, the sea and all the rest of creation exist. God attached
so much importance to his salvation that he did not spare his own
Son for the sake of man. Nor does he ever cease to work, trying
every possible means, until he has raised man up to himself and made
him sit at his right hand.223
359 "In reality it is only in the mystery of
the Word made flesh that the mystery of man truly becomes clear."224
-
St. Paul tells us that the human race takes its origin from two
men: Adam and Christ. . . The first man, Adam, he says, became a
living soul, the last Adam a life-giving spirit. The first Adam was
made by the last Adam, from whom he also received his soul, to give
him life... The second Adam stamped his image on the first Adam when
he created him. That is why he took on himself the role and the name
of the first Adam, in order that he might not lose what he had made
in his own image. The first Adam, the last Adam: the first had a
beginning, the last knows no end. The last Adam is indeed the first;
as he himself says: "I am the first and the last."225
360 Because of its common origin the human race
forms a unity, for "from one ancestor [God] made all nations
to inhabit the whole earth":226
-
O wondrous vision, which makes us contemplate the human race in
the unity of its origin in God. . . in the unity of its nature,
composed equally in all men of a material body and a spiritual soul;
in the unity of its immediate end and its mission in the world; in
the unity of its dwelling, the earth, whose benefits all men, by
right of nature, may use to sustain and develop life; in the unity
of its supernatural end: God himself, to whom all ought to tend; in
the unity of the means for attaining this end;. . . in the unity of
the redemption wrought by Christ for all.227
361 "This law of human solidarity and
charity",228 without excluding the rich variety of
persons, cultures and peoples, assures us that all men are truly
brethren.
II. "BODY AND SOUL BUT TRULY ONE"
362 The human person, created in the image of God,
is a being at once corporeal and spiritual. The biblical account
expresses this reality in symbolic language when it affirms that
"then the LORD God formed man of dust from the ground, and breathed
into his nostrils the breath of life; and man became a living
being."229 Man, whole and entire, is therefore willed
by God.
363 In Sacred Scripture the term "soul"
often refers to human life or the entire human person.230
But "soul" also refers to the innermost aspect of man, that
which is of greatest value in him,231 that by which he is
most especially in God's image: "soul" signifies the spiritual
principle in man.
364 The human body shares in the dignity of
"the image of God": it is a human body precisely because it is
animated by a spiritual soul, and it is the whole human person that is
intended to become, in the body of Christ, a temple of the Spirit:232
-
Man, though made of body and soul, is a unity. Through his very
bodily condition he sums up in himself the elements of the material
world. Through him they are thus brought to their highest perfection
and can raise their voice in praise freely given to the Creator. For
this reason man may not despise his bodily life. Rather he is
obliged to regard his body as good and to hold it in honor since God
has created it and will raise it up on the last day. 233
365 The unity of soul and body is so profound that
one has to consider the soul to be the "form" of the body:234
i.e., it is because of its spiritual soul that the body made of matter
becomes a living, human body; spirit and matter, in man, are not two
natures united, but rather their union forms a single nature.
366 The Church teaches that every spiritual soul is
created immediately by God - it is not "produced" by the
parents - and also that it is immortal: it does not perish when it
separates from the body at death, and it will be reunited with the body
at the final Resurrection.235
367 Sometimes the soul is distinguished from the
spirit: St. Paul for instance prays that God may sanctify his people
"wholly", with "spirit and soul and body" kept sound
and blameless at the Lord's coming.236 The Church teaches
that this distinction does not introduce a duality into the soul.237
"Spirit" signifies that from creation man is ordered to a
supernatural end and that his soul can gratuitously be raised beyond all
it deserves to communion with God.238
368 The spiritual tradition of the Church also
emphasizes the heart, in the biblical sense of the depths of
one's being, where the person decides for or against God.239
III. "MALE AND FEMALE HE CREATED THEM"
Equality and difference willed by God
369 Man and woman have been created, which
is to say, willed by God: on the one hand, in perfect equality
as human persons; on the other, in their respective beings as man and
woman. "Being man" or "being woman" is a reality
which is good and willed by God: man and woman possess an inalienable
dignity which comes to them immediately from God their Creator.240
Man and woman are both with one and the same dignity "in the image
of God". In their "being-man" and
"being-woman", they reflect the Creator's wisdom and goodness.
370 In no way is God in man's image. He is neither
man nor woman. God is pure spirit in which there is no place for the
difference between the sexes. But the respective "perfections"
of man and woman reflect something of the infinite perfection of God:
those of a mother and those of a father and husband.241
"Each for the other" - "A unity in two"
371 God created man and woman together and willed
each for the other. The Word of God gives us to understand this through
various features of the sacred text. "It is not good that the man
should be alone. I will make him a helper fit for him."242
None of the animals can be man's partner.243 The woman God
"fashions" from the man's rib and brings to him elicits on the
man's part a cry of wonder, an exclamation of love and communion:
"This at last is bone of my bones and flesh of my flesh."244
Man discovers woman as another "I", sharing the same humanity.
372 Man and woman were made "for each
other" - not that God left them half-made and incomplete: he
created them to be a communion of persons, in which each can be
"helpmate" to the other, for they are equal as persons
("bone of my bones. . .") and complementary as masculine and
feminine. In marriage God unites them in such a way that, by forming
"one flesh",245 they can transmit human life:
"Be fruitful and multiply, and fill the earth."246
By transmitting human life to their descendants, man and woman as
spouses and parents cooperate in a unique way in the Creator's work.247
373 In God's plan man and woman have the vocation of
"subduing" the earth248 as stewards of God. This
sovereignty is not to be an arbitrary and destructive domination. God
calls man and woman, made in the image of the Creator "who loves
everything that exists",249 to share in his providence
toward other creatures; hence their responsibility for the world God has
entrusted to them.
IV. MAN IN PARADISE
374 The first man was not only created good, but was
also established in friendship with his Creator and in harmony with
himself and with the creation around him, in a state that would be
surpassed only by the glory of the new creation in Christ.
375 The Church, interpreting the symbolism of
biblical language in an authentic way, in the light of the New Testament
and Tradition, teaches that our first parents, Adam and Eve, were
constituted in an original "state of holiness and justice".250
This grace of original holiness was "to share in. . .divine
life".251
376 By the radiance of this grace all dimensions of
man's life were confirmed. As long as he remained in the divine
intimacy, man would not have to suffer or die.252 The inner
harmony of the human person, the harmony between man and woman,253
and finally the harmony between the first couple and all creation,
comprised the state called "original justice".
377 The "mastery" over the world that God
offered man from the beginning was realized above all within man
himself: mastery of self. The first man was unimpaired and
ordered in his whole being because he was free from the triple
concupiscence254 that subjugates him to the pleasures of the
senses, covetousness for earthly goods, and self-assertion, contrary to
the dictates of reason.
378 The sign of man's familiarity with God is that
God places him in the garden.255 There he lives "to till
it and keep it". Work is not yet a burden,256 but rather
the collaboration of man and woman with God in perfecting the visible
creation.
379 This entire harmony of original justice,
foreseen for man in God's plan, will be lost by the sin of our first
parents.
IN BRIEF
380 "Father,. . . you formed man in your own
likeness and set him over the whole world to serve you, his creator, and
to rule over all creatures" (Roman Missal, EP IV, 118).
381 Man is predestined to reproduce the image of
God's Son made man, the "image of the invisible God" (Col 1:15),
so that Christ shall be the first-born of a multitude of brothers and
sisters (cf. Eph 1:3-6; Rom 8:29).
382 "Man, though made of body and soul, is a
unity" (GS 14 # 1). The doctrine of the faith affirms that the
spiritual and immortal soul is created immediately by God.
383 "God did not create man a solitary being.
From the beginning, "male and female he created them" (Gen
1:27). This partnership of man and woman constitutes the first form
of communion between persons" (GS 12 # 4).
384 Revelation makes known to us the state of
original holiness and justice of man and woman before sin: from their
friendship with God flowed the happiness of their existence in paradise.
Paragraph 7. The Fall
385 God is infinitely good and all his works are
good. Yet no one can escape the experience of suffering or the evils in
nature which seem to be linked to the limitations proper to creatures:
and above all to the question of moral evil. Where does evil come from?
"I sought whence evil comes and there was no solution", said
St. Augustine,257 and his own painful quest would only be
resolved by his conversion to the living God. For "the mystery of
lawlessness" is clarified only in the light of the "mystery of
our religion".258 The revelation of divine love in
Christ manifested at the same time the extent of evil and the
superabundance of grace.259 We must therefore approach the
question of the origin of evil by fixing the eyes of our faith on him
who alone is its conqueror.260
I. WHERE SIN ABOUNDED, GRACE ABOUNDED ALL THE MORE
The reality of sin
386 Sin is present in human history; any attempt to
ignore it or to give this dark reality other names would be futile. To
try to understand what sin is, one must first recognize the profound
relation of man to God, for only in this relationship is the evil of
sin unmasked in its true identity as humanity's rejection of God and
opposition to him, even as it continues to weigh heavy on human life and
history.
387 Only the light of divine Revelation clarifies the reality
of sin and particularly of the sin committed at mankind's origins.
Without the knowledge Revelation gives of God we cannot recognize sin
clearly and are tempted to explain it as merely a developmental flaw, a
psychological weakness, a mistake, or the necessary consequence of an
inadequate social structure, etc. Only in the knowledge of God's plan
for man can we grasp that sin is an abuse of the freedom that God gives
to created persons so that they are capable of loving him and loving one
another.
Original sin - an essential truth of the faith
388 With the progress of Revelation, the reality of
sin is also illuminated. Although to some extent the People of God in
the Old Testament had tried to understand the pathos of the human
condition in the light of the history of the fall narrated in Genesis,
they could not grasp this story's ultimate meaning, which is revealed
only in the light of the death and Resurrection of Jesus Christ.261
We must know Christ as the source of grace in order to know Adam as the
source of sin. The Spirit-Paraclete, sent by the risen Christ, came to
"convict the world concerning sin",262 by revealing
him who is its Redeemer.
389 The doctrine of original sin is, so to speak, the
"reverse side" of the Good News that Jesus is the Savior of
all men, that all need salvation and that salvation is offered to all
through Christ. The Church, which has the mind of Christ,263
knows very well that we cannot tamper with the revelation of original
sin without undermining the mystery of Christ.
How to read the account of the fall
390 The account of the fall in Genesis 3 uses
figurative language, but affirms a primeval event, a deed that took
place at the beginning of the history of man.264
Revelation gives us the certainty of faith that the whole of human
history is marked by the original fault freely committed by our first
parents.265
II. THE FALL OF THE ANGELS
391 Behind the disobedient choice of our first
parents lurks a seductive voice, opposed to God, which makes them fall
into death out of envy.266 Scripture and the Church's
Tradition see in this being a fallen angel, called "Satan" or
the "devil".267 The Church teaches that Satan was
at first a good angel, made by God: "The devil and the other demons
were indeed created naturally good by God, but they became evil by their
own doing."268
392 Scripture speaks of a sin of these angels.269
This "fall" consists in the free choice of these created
spirits, who radically and irrevocably rejected God and his
reign. We find a reflection of that rebellion in the tempter's words to
our first parents: "You will be like God."270 The
devil "has sinned from the beginning"; he is "a liar and
the father of lies".271
393 It is the irrevocable character of their choice,
and not a defect in the infinite divine mercy, that makes the angels'
sin unforgivable. "There is no repentance for the angels after
their fall, just as there is no repentance for men after death."272
394 Scripture witnesses to the disastrous influence of the one
Jesus calls "a murderer from the beginning", who would even
try to divert Jesus from the mission received from his Father.273
"The reason the Son of God appeared was to destroy the works of the
devil."274 In its consequences the gravest of these
works was the mendacious seduction that led man to disobey God.
395 The power of Satan is, nonetheless, not infinite. He is
only a creature, powerful from the fact that he is pure spirit, but
still a creature. He cannot prevent the building up of God's reign.
Although Satan may act in the world out of hatred for God and his
kingdom in Christ Jesus, and although his action may cause grave
injuries - of a spiritual nature and, indirectly, even of a physical
nature- to each man and to society, the action is permitted by divine
providence which with strength and gentleness guides human and cosmic
history. It is a great mystery that providence should permit diabolical
activity, but "we know that in everything God works for good with
those who love him."275
III. ORIGINAL SIN
Freedom put to the test
396 God created man in his image and established him
in his friendship. A spiritual creature, man can live this friendship
only in free submission to God. The prohibition against eating "of
the tree of the knowledge of good and evil" spells this out:
"for in the day that you eat of it, you shall die."276
The "tree of the knowledge of good and evil"277
symbolically evokes the insurmountable limits that man, being a
creature, must freely recognize and respect with trust. Man is dependent
on his Creator, and subject to the laws of creation and to the moral
norms that govern the use of freedom.
Man's first sin
397 Man, tempted by the devil, let his trust in his
Creator die in his heart and, abusing his freedom, disobeyed God's
command. This is what man's first sin consisted of.278 All
subsequent sin would be disobedience toward God and lack of trust in his
goodness.
398 In that sin man preferred himself to God and by
that very act scorned him. He chose himself over and against God,
against the requirements of his creaturely status and therefore against
his own good. Constituted in a state of holiness, man was destined to be
fully "divinized" by God in glory. Seduced by the devil, he
wanted to "be like God", but "without God, before God,
and not in accordance with God".279
399 Scripture portrays the tragic consequences of this first
disobedience. Adam and Eve immediately lose the grace of original
holiness.280 They become afraid of the God of whom they have
conceived a distorted image - that of a God jealous of his prerogatives.281
400 The harmony in which they had found themselves, thanks to
original justice, is now destroyed: the control of the soul's spiritual
faculties over the body is shattered; the union of man and woman becomes
subject to tensions, their relations henceforth marked by lust and
domination.282 Harmony with creation is broken: visible
creation has become alien and hostile to man.283 Because of
man, creation is now subject "to its bondage to decay".284
Finally, the consequence explicitly foretold for this disobedience will
come true: man will "return to the ground",285 for
out of it he was taken. Death makes its entrance into human history.286
401 After that first sin, the world is virtually inundated by
sin There is Cain's murder of his brother Abel and the universal
corruption which follows in the wake of sin. Likewise, sin frequently
manifests itself in the history of Israel, especially as infidelity to
the God of the Covenant and as transgression of the Law of Moses. And
even after Christ's atonement, sin raises its head in countless ways
among Christians.287 Scripture and the Church's Tradition
continually recall the presence and universality of sin in man's
history:
-
What Revelation makes known to us is confirmed by our own
experience. For when man looks into his own heart he finds that he
is drawn towards what is wrong and sunk in many evils which cannot
come from his good creator. Often refusing to acknowledge God as his
source, man has also upset the relationship which should link him to
his last end, and at the same time he has broken the right order
that should reign within himself as well as between himself and
other men and all creatures.288
The consequences of Adam's sin for humanity
402 All men are implicated in Adam's sin, as St.
Paul affirms: "By one man's disobedience many (that is, all men)
were made sinners": "sin came into the world through one man
and death through sin, and so death spread to all men because all men
sinned."289 The Apostle contrasts the universality of
sin and death with the universality of salvation in Christ. "Then
as one man's trespass led to condemnation for all men, so one man's act
of righteousness leads to acquittal and life for all men."290
403 Following St. Paul, the Church has always taught that the
overwhelming misery which oppresses men and their inclination towards
evil and death cannot be understood apart from their connection with
Adam's sin and the fact that he has transmitted to us a sin with which
we are all born afflicted, a sin which is the "death of the
soul".291 Because of this certainty of faith, the Church
baptizes for the remission of sins even tiny infants who have not
committed personal sin.292
404 How did the sin of Adam become the sin of all his
descendants? The whole human race is in Adam "as one body of one
man".293 By this "unity of the human race" all
men are implicated in Adam's sin, as all are implicated in Christ's
justice. Still, the transmission of original sin is a mystery that we
cannot fully understand. But we do know by Revelation that Adam had
received original holiness and justice not for himself alone, but for
all human nature. By yielding to the tempter, Adam and Eve committed a personal
sin, but this sin affected the human nature that they would
then transmit in a fallen state.294 It is a sin which
will be transmitted by propagation to all mankind, that is, by the
transmission of a human nature deprived of original holiness and
justice. And that is why original sin is called "sin" only in
an analogical sense: it is a sin "contracted" and not
"committed" - a state and not an act.
405 Although it is proper to each individual,295
original sin does not have the character of a personal fault in any of
Adam's descendants. It is a deprivation of original holiness and
justice, but human nature has not been totally corrupted: it is wounded
in the natural powers proper to it, subject to ignorance, suffering and
the dominion of death, and inclined to sin - an inclination to evil that
is called concupiscence". Baptism, by imparting the life of
Christ's grace, erases original sin and turns a man back towards God,
but the consequences for nature, weakened and inclined to evil, persist
in man and summon him to spiritual battle.
406 The Church's teaching on the transmission of original sin
was articulated more precisely in the fifth century, especially under
the impulse of St. Augustine's reflections against Pelagianism, and in
the sixteenth century, in opposition to the Protestant Reformation.
Pelagius held that man could, by the natural power of free will and
without the necessary help of God's grace, lead a morally good life; he
thus reduced the influence of Adam's fault to bad example. The first
Protestant reformers, on the contrary, taught that original sin has
radically perverted man and destroyed his freedom; they identified the
sin inherited by each man with the tendency to evil (concupiscentia),
which would be insurmountable. The Church pronounced on the meaning of
the data of Revelation on original sin especially at the second Council
of Orange (529)296 and at the Council of Trent (1546).297
A hard battle. . .
407 The doctrine of original sin, closely
connected with that of redemption by Christ, provides lucid discernment
of man's situation and activity in the world. By our first parents' sin,
the devil has acquired a certain domination over man, even though man
remains free. Original sin entails "captivity under the power of
him who thenceforth had the power of death, that is, the devil".298
Ignorance of the fact that man has a wounded nature inclined to evil
gives rise to serious errors in the areas of education, politics, social
action299 and morals.
408 The consequences of original sin and of all men's personal
sins put the world as a whole in the sinful condition aptly described in
St. John's expression, "the sin of the world".300
This expression can also refer to the negative influence exerted on
people by communal situations and social structures that are the fruit
of men's sins.301
409 This dramatic situation of "the whole world [which]
is in the power of the evil one"302 makes man's life a
battle:
-
The whole of man's history has been the story of dour combat with
the powers of evil, stretching, so our Lord tells us, from the very
dawn of history until the last day. Finding himself in the midst of
the battlefield man has to struggle to do what is right, and it is
at great cost to himself, and aided by God's grace, that he succeeds
in achieving his own inner integrity.303
IV. "YOU DID NOT ABANDON HIM TO THE POWER OF DEATH"
410 After his fall, man was not abandoned by God. On
the contrary, God calls him and in a mysterious way heralds the coming
victory over evil and his restoration from his fall.304 This
passage in Genesis is called the Protoevangelium ("first
gospel"): the first announcement of the Messiah and Redeemer, of a
battle between the serpent and the Woman, and of the final victory of a
descendant of hers.
411 The Christian tradition sees in this passage an
announcement of the "New Adam" who, because he "became
obedient unto death, even death on a cross", makes amends
superabundantly for the disobedience, of Adam.305 Furthermore
many Fathers and Doctors of the Church have seen the woman announced in
the Protoevangelium as Mary, the mother of Christ, the "new
Eve". Mary benefited first of all and uniquely from Christ's
victory over sin: she was preserved from all stain of original sin and
by a special grace of God committed no sin of any kind during her whole
earthly life.306
412 But why did God not prevent the first man from sinning?
St. Leo the Great responds, "Christ's inexpressible grace gave us
blessings better than those the demon's envy had taken away."307
And St. Thomas Aquinas wrote, "There is nothing to prevent human
nature's being raised up to something greater, even after sin; God
permits evil in order to draw forth some greater good. Thus St. Paul
says, 'Where sin increased, grace abounded all the more'; and the
Exsultet sings, 'O happy fault,. . . which gained for us so great a
Redeemer!'"308
IN BRIEF
413 "God did not make death, and he does not delight in
the death of the living. . . It was through the devil's envy that death
entered the world" (Wis 1:13; 2:24).
414 Satan or the devil and the other demons are fallen angels
who have freely refused to serve God and his plan. Their choice against
God is definitive. They try to associate man in their revolt against
God.
415 "Although set by God in a state of rectitude man,
enticed by the evil one, abused his freedom at the very start of
history. He lifted himself up against God, and sought to attain his goal
apart from him" (GS 13 § 1).
416 By his sin Adam, as the first man, lost the original
holiness and justice he had received from God, not only for himself but
for all human beings.
417 Adam and Eve transmitted to their descendants human nature
wounded by their own first sin and hence deprived of original holiness
and justice; this deprivation is called "original sin".
418 As a result of original sin, human nature is weakened in
its powers, subject to ignorance, suffering and the domination of death,
and inclined to sin (this inclination is called
"concupiscence").
419 "We therefore hold, with the Council of Trent, that
original sin is transmitted with human nature, "by propagation, not
by imitation" and that it is. . . 'proper to each'" (Paul VI, CPG
§ 16).
420 The victory that Christ won over sin has given us greater
blessings than those which sin had taken from us: "where sin
increased, grace abounded all the more" (Rom 5:20).
421 Christians believe that "the world has been
established and kept in being by the Creator's love; has fallen into
slavery to sin but has been set free by Christ, crucified and risen to
break the power of the evil one. . ." (GS 2 § 2).
CHAPTER TWO
I BELIEVE IN JESUS CHRIST, THE ONLY SON OF GOD
The Good News: God has sent his Son
422 'But when the time had fully come, God sent
forth his Son, born of a woman, born under the law, to redeem those who
were under the law, so that we might receive adoption as sons.'1
This is 'the gospel of Jesus Christ, the Son of God':'2 God
has visited his people. He has fulfilled the promise he made to Abraham
and his descendants. He acted far beyond all expectation - he has sent
his own 'beloved Son'.3
423 We believe and confess that Jesus of Nazareth,
born a Jew of a daughter of Israel at Bethlehem at the time of King
Herod the Great and the emperor Caesar Augustus, a carpenter by trade,
who died crucified in Jerusalem under the procurator Pontius Pilate
during the reign of the emperor Tiberius, is the eternal Son of God made
man. He 'came from God',4 'descended from heaven',5
and 'came in the flesh'.6 For 'the Word became flesh and
dwelt among us, full of grace and truth; we have beheld his glory, glory
as of the only Son from the Father. . . And from his fullness have we
all received, grace upon grace.'7
424 Moved by the grace of the Holy Spirit and drawn
by the Father, we believe in Jesus and confess: 'You are the Christ, the
Son of the living God.'8 On the rock of this faith confessed
by St. Peter, Christ built his Church.9
"To preach. . . the unsearchable riches of Christ"10
425 The transmission of the Christian faith consists
primarily in proclaiming Jesus Christ in order to lead others to faith
in him. From the beginning, the first disciples burned with the desire
to proclaim Christ: "We cannot but speak of what we have seen and
heard."'11 It And they invite people of every era to
enter into the joy of their communion with Christ:
-
That which was from the beginning, which we have heard, which we
have seen with our eyes, which we have looked upon and touched with
our hands, concerning the word of life - the life was made manifest,
and we saw it, and testify to it, and proclaim to you the eternal
life which was with the Father and was made manifest to us- that
which we have seen and heard we proclaim also to you, so that you
may have fellowship with us; and our fellowship is with the Father
and with his Son Jesus Christ. And we are writing this that our joy
may be complete.12
At the heart of catechesis: Christ
426 "At the heart of catechesis we find, in
essence, a Person, the Person of Jesus of Nazareth, the only Son from
the Father. . .who suffered and died for us and who now, after rising,
is living with us forever."13 To catechize is "to
reveal in the Person of Christ the whole of God's eternal design
reaching fulfillment in that Person. It is to seek to understand the
meaning of Christ's actions and words and of the signs worked by
him."'14 Catechesis aims at putting "people . . .
in communion . . . with Jesus Christ: only he can lead us to the love of
the Father in the Spirit and make us share in the life of the Holy
Trinity."15
427 In catechesis "Christ, the Incarnate Word
and Son of God,. . . is taught - everything else is taught with
reference to him - and it is Christ alone who teaches - anyone else
teaches to the extent that he is Christ's spokesman, enabling Christ to
teach with his lips. . . Every catechist should be able to apply to
himself the mysterious words of Jesus: 'My teaching is not mine, but his
who sent me.'"16
428 Whoever is called "to teach Christ"
must first seek "the surpassing worth of knowing Christ
Jesus"; he must suffer "the loss of all things. . ." in
order to "gain Christ and be found in him", and "to know
him and the power of his resurrection, and [to] share his sufferings,
becoming like him in his death, that if possible [he] may attain the
resurrection from the dead".17
429 From this loving knowledge of Christ springs the
desire to proclaim him, to "evangelize", and to lead others to
the "yes" of faith in Jesus Christ. But at the same time the
need to know this faith better makes itself felt. To this end, following
the order of the Creed, Jesus' principal titles - "Christ",
"Son of God", and "Lord" (article 2) - will
be presented. The Creed next confesses the chief mysteries of his life -
those of his Incarnation (article 3), Paschal mystery (articles
4 and 5) and glorification (articles 6 and 7).
ARTICLE 2
"AND IN JESUS CHRIST, HIS ONLY SON, OUR LORD"
I. JESUS
430 Jesus means in Hebrew: "God saves." At
the annunciation, the angel Gabriel gave him the name Jesus as his
proper name, which expresses both his identity and his mission.18
Since God alone can forgive sins, it is God who, in Jesus his eternal
Son made man, "will save his people from their sins".19
in Jesus, God recapitulates all of his history of salvation on behalf of
men.
431 In the history of salvation God was not content
to deliver Israel "out of the house of bondage"20
by bringing them out of Egypt. He also saves them from their sin.
Because sin is always an offence against God, only he can forgive it.21
For this reason Israel, becoming more and more aware of the universality
of sin, will no longer be able to seek salvation except by invoking the
name of the Redeemer God.22
432 The name "Jesus" signifies that the
very name of God is present in the person of his Son, made man for the
universal and definitive redemption from sins. It is the divine name
that alone brings salvation, and henceforth all can invoke his name, for
Jesus united himself to all men through his Incarnation,23 so
that "there is no other name under heaven given among men by which
we must be saved."24
433 The name of the Savior God was invoked only once
in the year by the high priest in atonement for the sins of Israel,
after he had sprinkled the mercy seat in the Holy of Holies with the
sacrificial blood. The mercy seat was the place of God's presence.25
When St. Paul speaks of Jesus whom "God put forward as an expiation
by his blood", he means that in Christ's humanity "God was in
Christ reconciling the world to himself."26
434 Jesus' Resurrection glorifies the name of the
Savior God, for from that time on it is the name of Jesus that fully
manifests the supreme power of the "name which is above every
name".27 The evil spirits fear his name; in his name his
disciples perform miracles, for the Father grants all they ask in this
name.28
435 The name of Jesus is at the heart of Christian
prayer. All liturgical prayers conclude with the words "through our
Lord Jesus Christ". The Hail Mary reaches its high point
in the words "blessed is the fruit of thy womb, Jesus." The
Eastern prayer of the heart, the Jesus Prayer, says: "Lord
Jesus Christ, Son of God, have mercy on me, a sinner." Many
Christians, such as St. Joan of Arc, have died with the one word
"Jesus" on their lips.
II. CHRIST
436 The word "Christ" comes from the Greek
translation of the Hebrew Messiah, which means
"anointed". It became the name proper to Jesus only because he
accomplished perfectly the divine mission that "Christ"
signifies. In effect, in Israel those consecrated to God for a mission
that he gave were anointed in his name. This was the case for kings, for
priests and, in rare instances, for prophets.29 This had to
be the case all the more so for the Messiah whom God would send to
inaugurate his kingdom definitively.30 It was necessary that
the Messiah be anointed by the Spirit of the Lord at once as king and
priest, and also as prophet.31 Jesus fulfilled the messianic
hope of Israel in his threefold office of priest, prophet and king.
437 To the shepherds, the angel announced the birth
of Jesus as the Messiah promised to Israel: "To you is born this
day in the city of David a Savior, who is Christ the Lord."32
From the beginning he was "the one whom the Father consecrated and
sent into the world", conceived as "holy" in Mary's
virginal womb.33 God called Joseph to "take Mary as your
wife, for that which is conceived in her is of the Holy Spirit", so
that Jesus, "who is called Christ", should be born of Joseph's
spouse into the messianic lineage of David.34
438 Jesus' messianic consecration reveals his divine
mission, "for the name 'Christ' implies 'he who anointed', 'he who
was anointed' and 'the very anointing with which he was anointed'. The
one who anointed is the Father, the one who was anointed is the Son, and
he was anointed with the Spirit who is the anointing.'"35
His eternal messianic consecration was revealed during the time of his
earthly life at the moment of his baptism by John, when "God
anointed Jesus of Nazareth with the Holy Spirit and with power",
"that he might be revealed to Israel"36 as its
Messiah. His works and words will manifest him as "the Holy One of
God".37
439 Many Jews and even certain Gentiles who shared
their hope recognized in Jesus the fundamental attributes of the
messianic "Son of David", promised by God to Israel.38
Jesus accepted his rightful title of Messiah, though with some reserve
because it was understood by some of his contemporaries in too human a
sense, as essentially political.39
440 Jesus accepted Peter's profession of faith,
which acknowledged him to be the Messiah, by announcing the imminent
Passion of the Son of Man.40 He unveiled the authentic
content of his messianic kingship both in the transcendent identity of
the Son of Man "who came down from heaven", and in his
redemptive mission as the suffering Servant: "The Son of Man came
not to be served but to serve, and to give his life as a ransom for
many."41 Hence the true meaning of his kingship is
revealed only when he is raised high on the cross.42 Only
after his Resurrection will Peter be able to proclaim Jesus' messianic
kingship to the People of God: "Let all the house of Israel
therefore know assuredly that God has made him both Lord and Christ,
this Jesus whom you crucified."43
III. THE ONLY SON OF GOD
441 In the Old Testament, "son of God"
is a title given to the angels, the Chosen People, the children of
Israel, and their kings.44 It signifies an adoptive sonship
that establishes a relationship of particular intimacy between God and
his creature. When the promised Messiah-King is called "son of
God", it does not necessarily imply that he was more than human,
according to the literal meaning of these texts. Those who called Jesus
"son of God", as the Messiah of Israel, perhaps meant nothing
more than this.45
442 Such is not the case for Simon Peter when he
confesses Jesus as "the Christ, the Son of the living God",
for Jesus responds solemnly: "Flesh and blood has not revealed this
to you, but my Father who is in heaven."46
Similarly Paul will write, regarding his conversion on the road to
Damascus, "When he who had set me apart before I was born, and had
called me through his grace, was pleased to reveal his Son to me, in
order that I might preach him among the Gentiles..."47
"And in the synagogues immediately [Paul] proclaimed Jesus, saying,
'He is the Son of God.'"48 From the beginning this
acknowledgment of Christ's divine sonship will be the center of the
apostolic faith, first professed by Peter as the Church's foundation.49
443 Peter could recognize the transcendent character
of the Messiah's divine sonship because Jesus had clearly allowed it to
be so understood. To his accusers' question before the Sanhedrin,
"Are you the Son of God, then?" Jesus answered, "You say
that I am."50 Well before this, Jesus referred to
himself as "the Son" who knows the Father, as distinct from
the "servants" God had earlier sent to his people; he is
superior even to the angels.51 He distinguished his sonship
from that of his disciples by never saying "our Father",
except to command them: "You, then, pray like this: 'Our
Father'", and he emphasized this distinction, saying "my
Father and your Father".52
444 The Gospels report that at two solemn moments,
the Baptism and the Transfiguration of Christ, the voice of the Father
designates Jesus his "beloved Son".53 Jesus calls
himself the "only Son of God", and by this title affirms his
eternal pre-existence.54 He asks for faith in "the name
of the only Son of God".55 In the centurion's
exclamation before the crucified Christ, "Truly this man was the
Son of God",56 that Christian confession is already
heard. Only in the Paschal mystery can the believer give the title
"Son of God" its full meaning.
445 After his Resurrection, Jesus' divine sonship
becomes manifest in the power of his glorified humanity. He was
"designated Son of God in power according to the Spirit of holiness
by his Resurrection from the dead".57 The apostles can
confess: "We have beheld his glory, glory as of the only Son from
the Father, full of grace and truth."58
IV. LORD
446 In the Greek translation of the Old Testament,
the ineffable Hebrew name YHWH, by which God revealed himself to Moses,59
is rendered as Kyrios, "Lord". From then on, "Lord"
becomes the more usual name by which to indicate the divinity of
Israel's God. The New Testament uses this full sense of the title
"Lord" both for the Father and - what is new - for Jesus, who
is thereby recognized as God Himself.60
447 Jesus ascribes this title to himself in a veiled
way when he disputes with the Pharisees about the meaning of Psalm 110,
but also in an explicit way when he addresses his apostles.61
Throughout his public life, he demonstrated his divine sovereignty by
works of power over nature, illnesses, demons, death and sin.
448 Very often in the Gospels people address Jesus
as "Lord". This title testifies to the respect and trust of
those who approach him for help and healing.62 At the
prompting of the Holy Spirit, "Lord" expresses the recognition
of the divine mystery of Jesus.63 In the encounter with the
risen Jesus, this title becomes adoration: "My Lord and my
God!" It thus takes on a connotation of love and affection that
remains proper to the Christian tradition: "It is the Lord!"64
449 By attributing to Jesus the divine title
"Lord", the first confessions of the Church's faith affirm
from the beginning that the power, honor and glory due to God the Father
are due also to Jesus, because "he was in the form of God",65
and the Father manifested the sovereignty of Jesus by raising him from
the dead and exalting him into his glory.66
450 From the beginning of Christian history, the
assertion of Christ's lordship over the world and over history has
implicitly recognized that man should not submit his personal freedom in
an absolute manner to any earthly power, but only to God the Father and
the Lord Jesus Christ: Caesar is not "the Lord".67
"The Church. . . believes that the key, the center and the purpose
of the whole of man's history is to be found in its Lord and
Master."68
451 Christian prayer is characterized by the title
"Lord", whether in the invitation to prayer ("The Lord be
with you"), its conclusion ("through Christ our Lord") or
the exclamation full of trust and hope: Maran atha ("Our
Lord, come!") or Marana tha ("Come, Lord!") -
"Amen Come Lord Jesus!"69
IN BRIEF
452 The name Jesus means "God saves". The
child born of the Virgin Mary is called Jesus, "for he will save
his people from their sins" (Mt 1:21): "there is no other name
under heaven given among men by which we must be saved" (Acts 4:12).
453 The title "Christ" means
"Anointed One" (Messiah).Jesus is the Christ, for "God
anointed Jesus of Nazareth with the Holy Spirit and with power"
(Acts 10:38). He was the one "who is to come" (Lk 7:19),
the object of "the hope of Israel" (Acts 28:20).
454 The title "Son of God" signifies the
unique and eternal relationship of Jesus Christ to God his Father: he is
the only Son of the Father (cf. Jn 1:14, 18; 3:16, 18); he is
God himself (cf. Jn 1:1). To be a Christian, one must believe
that Jesus Christ is the Son of God (cf. Acts 8:37; 1 Jn 2:23).
455 The title "Lord" indicates divine
sovereignty. To confess or invoke Jesus as Lord is to believe in his
divinity. "No one can say 'Jesus is Lord' except by the Holy
Spirit'" (I Cor 12:3).
ARTICLE 3
"HE WAS CONCEIVED BY THE POWER OF THE HOLY SPIRIT, AND BORN OF THE
VIRGIN MARY"
Paragraph 1. The Son of God Became Man
I. WHY DID THE WORD BECOME FLESH?
456 With the Nicene Creed, we answer by confessing:
"For us men and for our salvation he came down from heaven; by the
power of the Holy Spirit, he became incarnate of the Virgin Mary, and
was made man."
457 The Word became flesh for us in order to
save us by reconciling us with God, who "loved us and sent his
Son to be the expiation for our sins": "the Father has sent
his Son as the Savior of the world", and "he was revealed to
take away sins":70
-
Sick, our nature demanded to be healed; fallen, to be raised up;
dead, to rise again. We had lost the possession of the good; it was
necessary for it to be given back to us. Closed in the darkness, it
was necessary to bring us the light; captives, we awaited a Savior;
prisoners, help; slaves, a liberator. Are these things minor or
insignificant? Did they not move God to descend to human nature and
visit it, since humanity was in so miserable and unhappy a state?71
458 The Word became flesh so that thus we might
know God's love: "In this the love of God was made manifest
among us, that God sent his only Son into the world, so that we might
live through him."72 "For God so loved the world
that he gave his only Son, that whoever believes in him should not
perish but have eternal life."73
459 The Word became flesh to be our model of
holiness: "Take my yoke upon you, and learn from me."
"I am the way, and the truth, and the life; no one comes to the
Father, but by me."74 On the mountain of the
Transfiguration, the Father commands: "Listen to him!"75
Jesus is the model for the Beatitudes and the norm of the new law:
"Love one another as I have loved you."76 This love
implies an effective offering of oneself, after his example.77
460 The Word became flesh to make us "partakers
of the divine nature":78 "For this is why the
Word became man, and the Son of God became the Son of man: so that man,
by entering into communion with the Word and thus receiving divine
sonship, might become a son of God."79 "For the Son
of God became man so that we might become God."80
"The only-begotten Son of God, wanting to make us sharers in his
divinity, assumed our nature, so that he, made man, might make men
gods."81
II. THE INCARNATION
461 Taking up St. John's expression, "The Word
became flesh",82 the Church calls
"Incarnation" the fact that the Son of God assumed a human
nature in order to accomplish our salvation in it. In a hymn cited by
St. Paul, the Church sings the mystery of the Incarnation:
-
Have this mind among yourselves, which is yours in Christ Jesus,
who, though he was in the form of God, did not count equality with
God a thing to be grasped, but emptied himself, taking the form of a
servant, being born in the likeness of men. And being found in human
form he humbled himself and became obedient unto death, even death
on a cross.83
462 The Letter to the Hebrews refers to the same
mystery:
-
Consequently, when Christ came into the world, he said,
"Sacrifices and offerings you have not desired, but a body have
you prepared for me; in burnt offerings and sin offerings you have
taken no pleasure. Then I said, Lo, I have come to do your will, O
God."84
463 Belief in the true Incarnation of the Son of God
is the distinctive sign of Christian faith: "By this you know the
Spirit of God: every spirit which confesses that Jesus Christ has come
in the flesh is of God."85 Such is the joyous conviction
of the Church from her beginning whenever she sings "the mystery of
our religion": "He was manifested in the flesh."86
III. TRUE GOD AND TRUE MAN
464 The unique and altogether singular event of the
Incarnation of the Son of God does not mean that Jesus Christ is part
God and part man, nor does it imply that he is the result of a confused
mixture of the divine and the human. He became truly man while remaining
truly God. Jesus Christ is true God and true man.
During the first centuries, the Church had to defend and clarify this
truth of faith against the heresies that falsified it.
465 The first heresies denied not so much Christ's
divinity as his true humanity (Gnostic Docetism). From apostolic times
the Christian faith has insisted on the true incarnation of God's Son
"come in the flesh".87 But already in the third
century, the Church in a council at Antioch had to affirm against Paul
of Samosata that Jesus Christ is Son of God by nature and not by
adoption. The first ecumenical council of Nicaea in 325 confessed in its
Creed that the Son of God is "begotten, not made, of the same
substance (homoousios) as the Father", and condemned
Arius, who had affirmed that the Son of God "came to be from things
that were not" and that he was "from another substance"
than that of the Father.88
466 The Nestorian heresy regarded Christ as a human
person joined to the divine person of God's Son. Opposing this heresy,
St. Cyril of Alexandria and the third ecumenical council, at Ephesus in
431, confessed "that the Word, uniting to himself in his person the
flesh animated by a rational soul, became man."89
Christ's humanity has no other subject than the divine person of the Son
of God, who assumed it and made it his own, from his conception. For
this reason the Council of Ephesus proclaimed in 431 that Mary truly
became the Mother of God by the human conception of the Son of God in
her womb: "Mother of God, not that the nature of the Word or his
divinity received the beginning of its existence from the holy Virgin,
but that, since the holy body, animated by a rational soul, which the
Word of God united to himself according to the hypostasis, was born from
her, the Word is said to be born according to the flesh."90
467 The Monophysites affirmed that the human nature
had ceased to exist as such in Christ when the divine person of God's
Son assumed it. Faced with this heresy, the fourth ecumenical council,
at Chalcedon in 451, confessed:
-
Following the holy Fathers, we unanimously teach and confess one
and the same Son, our Lord Jesus Christ: the same perfect in
divinity and perfect in humanity, the same truly God and truly man,
composed of rational soul and body; consubstantial with the Father
as to his divinity and consubstantial with us as to his humanity;
"like us in all things but sin". He was begotten from the
Father before all ages as to his divinity and in these last days,
for us and for our salvation, was born as to his humanity of the
virgin Mary, the Mother of God.91
We confess that one and the same Christ, Lord, and only-begotten
Son, is to be acknowledged in two natures without confusion, change,
division or separation. The distinction between the natures was
never abolished by their union, but rather the character proper to
each of the two natures was preserved as they came together in one
person (prosopon) and one hypostasis.92
468 After the Council of Chalcedon, some made of
Christ's human nature a kind of personal subject. Against them, the
fifth ecumenical council, at Constantinople in 553, confessed that
"there is but one hypostasis [or person], which is our
Lord Jesus Christ, one of the Trinity."93 Thus
everything in Christ's human nature is to be attributed to his divine
person as its proper subject, not only his miracles but also his
sufferings and even his death: "He who was crucified in the flesh,
our Lord Jesus Christ, is true God, Lord of glory, and one of the
Holy Trinity."94
469 The Church thus confesses that Jesus is
inseparably true God and true man. He is truly the Son of God who,
without ceasing to be God and Lord, became a man and our brother:
-
"What he was, he remained and what he was not, he
assumed", sings the Roman Liturgy.95 And the liturgy
of St. John Chrysostom proclaims and sings: "O only-begotten
Son and Word of God, immortal being, you who deigned for our
salvation to become incarnate of the holy Mother of God and
ever-virgin Mary, you who without change became man and were
crucified, O Christ our God, you who by your death have crushed
death, you who are one of the Holy Trinity, glorified with the
Father and the Holy Spirit, save us!"96
IV. HOW IS THE SON OF GOD MAN?
470 Because "human nature was assumed, not
absorbed",97 in the mysterious union of the Incarnation,
the Church was led over the course of centuries to confess the full
reality of Christ's human soul, with its operations of intellect and
will, and of his human body. In parallel fashion, she had to recall on
each occasion that Christ's human nature belongs, as his own, to the
divine person of the Son of God, who assumed it. Everything that Christ
is and does in this nature derives from "one of the Trinity".
The Son of God therefore communicates to his humanity his own personal
mode of existence in the Trinity. In his soul as in his body, Christ
thus expresses humanly the divine ways of the Trinity:98
-
The Son of God. . . worked with human hands; he thought with a
human mind. He acted with a human will, and with a human heart he
loved. Born of the Virgin Mary, he has truly been made one of us,
like to us in all things except sin.99
Christ's soul and his human knowledge
471 Apollinarius of Laodicaea asserted that in
Christ the divine Word had replaced the soul or spirit. Against this
error the Church confessed that the eternal Son also assumed a rational,
human soul.100
472 This human soul that the Son of God assumed is
endowed with a true human knowledge. As such, this knowledge could not
in itself be unlimited: it was exercised in the historical conditions of
his existence in space and time. This is why the Son of God could, when
he became man, "increase in wisdom and in stature, and in favor
with God and man",101 and would even have to inquire for
himself about what one in the human condition can learn only from
experience.102 This corresponded to the reality of his
voluntary emptying of himself, taking "the form of a slave".103
473 But at the same time, this truly human knowledge
of God's Son expressed the divine life of his person.104
"The human nature of God's Son, not by itself but by its union
with the Word, knew and showed forth in itself everything that
pertains to God."105 Such is first of all the case with
the intimate and immediate knowledge that the Son of God made man has of
his Father.106 The Son in his human knowledge also showed the
divine penetration he had into the secret thoughts of human hearts.107
474 By its union to the divine wisdom in the person
of the Word incarnate, Christ enjoyed in his human knowledge the
fullness of understanding of the eternal plans he had come to reveal.108
What he admitted to not knowing in this area, he elsewhere declared
himself not sent to reveal.109
Christ's human will
475 Similarly, at the sixth ecumenical council,
Constantinople III in 681, the Church confessed that Christ possesses
two wills and two natural operations, divine and human. They are not
opposed to each other, but cooperate in such a way that the Word made
flesh willed humanly in obedience to his Father all that he had decided
divinely with the Father and the Holy Spirit for our salvation.110
Christ's human will "does not resist or oppose but rather submits
to his divine and almighty will."111
Christ's true body
476 Since the Word became flesh in assuming a true
humanity, Christ's body was finite.112 Therefore the human
face of Jesus can be portrayed; at the seventh ecumenical council
(Nicaea II in 787) the Church recognized its representation in holy
images to be legitimate.113
477 At the same time the Church has always
acknowledged that in the body of Jesus "we see our God made visible
and so are caught up in love of the God we cannot see."114
The individual characteristics of Christ's body express the divine
person of God's Son. He has made the features of his human body his own,
to the point that they can be venerated when portrayed in a holy image,
for the believer "who venerates the icon is venerating in it the
person of the one depicted".115
The heart of the Incarnate Word
478 Jesus knew and loved us each and all during his
life, his agony and his Passion, and gave himself up for each one of us:
"The Son of God. . . loved me and gave himself for me."116
He has loved us all with a human heart. For this reason, the Sacred
Heart of Jesus, pierced by our sins and for our salvation,117
"is quite rightly considered the chief sign and symbol of that. . .
love with which the divine Redeemer continually loves the eternal Father
and all human beings" without exception.118
IN BRIEF
479 At the time appointed by God, the only Son of
the Father, the eternal Word, that is, the Word and substantial Image of
the Father, became incarnate; without losing his divine nature he has
assumed human nature.
480 Jesus Christ is true God and true man, in the
unity of his divine person; for this reason he is the one and only
mediator between God and men.
481 Jesus Christ possesses two natures, one divine
and the other human, not confused, but united in the one person of God's
Son.
482 Christ, being true God and true man, has a human
intellect and will, perfectly attuned and subject to his divine
intellect and divine will, which he has in common with the Father and
the Holy Spirit.
483 The Incarnation is therefore the mystery of the
wonderful union of the divine and human natures in the one person of the
Word.
Paragraph 2. "Conceived by the Power of the Holy Spirit and Born
of the Virgin Mary"
I. CONCEIVED BY THE POWER OF THE HOLY SPIRIT. . .
484 The Annunciation to Mary inaugurates "the
fullness of time",119 the time of the fulfillment of
God's promises and preparations. Mary was invited to conceive him in
whom the "whole fullness of deity" would dwell
"bodily".120 The divine response to her question,
"How can this be, since I know not man?", was given by the
power of the Spirit: "The Holy Spirit will come upon you."121
485 The mission of the Holy Spirit is always
conjoined and ordered to that of the Son.122 The Holy Spirit,
"the Lord, the giver of Life", is sent to sanctify the womb of
the Virgin Mary and divinely fecundate it, causing her to conceive the
eternal Son of the Father in a humanity drawn from her own.
486 The Father's only Son, conceived as man in the
womb of the Virgin Mary, is "Christ", that is to say, anointed
by the Holy Spirit, from the beginning of his human existence, though
the manifestation of this fact takes place only progressively: to the
shepherds, to the magi, to John the Baptist, to the disciples.123
Thus the whole life of Jesus Christ will make manifest "how God
anointed Jesus of Nazareth with the Holy Spirit and with power."124
II. . . .BORN OF THE VIRGIN MARY
487 What the Catholic faith believes about Mary is
based on what it believes about Christ, and what it teaches about Mary
illumines in turn its faith in Christ.
Mary's predestination
488 "God sent forth his Son", but to
prepare a body for him,125 he wanted the free co-operation of
a creature. For this, from all eternity God chose for the mother of his
Son a daughter of Israel, a young Jewish woman of Nazareth in Galilee,
"a virgin betrothed to a man whose name was Joseph, of the house of
David; and the virgin's name was Mary":126
-
The Father of mercies willed that the Incarnation should be
preceded by assent on the part of the predestined mother, so that
just as a woman had a share in the coming of death, so also should a
woman contribute to the coming of life.127
489 Throughout the Old Covenant the mission of many
holy women prepared for that of Mary. At the very beginning
there was Eve; despite her disobedience, she receives the promise of a
posterity that will be victorious over the evil one, as well as the
promise that she will be the mother of all the living.128 By
virtue of this promise, Sarah conceives a son in spite of her old age.129
Against all human expectation God chooses those who were considered
powerless and weak to show forth his faithfulness to his promises:
Hannah, the mother of Samuel; Deborah; Ruth; Judith and Esther; and many
other women.130 Mary "stands out among the poor and
humble of the Lord, who confidently hope for and receive salvation from
him. After a long period of waiting the times are fulfilled in her, the
exalted Daughter of Sion, and the new plan of salvation is
established."131
The Immaculate Conception
490 To become the mother of the Savior, Mary
"was enriched by God with gifts appropriate to such a role."132
The angel Gabriel at the moment of the annunciation salutes her as
"full of grace".133 In fact, in order for Mary to
be able to give the free assent of her faith to the announcement of her
vocation, it was necessary that she be wholly borne by God's grace.
491 Through the centuries the Church has become ever
more aware that Mary, "full of grace" through God,134
was redeemed from the moment of her conception. That is what the dogma
of the Immaculate Conception confesses, as Pope Pius IX proclaimed in
1854:
-
The most Blessed Virgin Mary was, from the first moment of her
conception, by a singular grace and privilege of almighty God and by
virtue of the merits of Jesus Christ, Savior of the human race,
preserved immune from all stain of original sin.135
492 The "splendor of an entirely unique
holiness" by which Mary is "enriched from the first instant of
her conception" comes wholly from Christ: she is "redeemed, in
a more exalted fashion, by reason of the merits of her Son".136
The Father blessed Mary more than any other created person "in
Christ with every spiritual blessing in the heavenly places" and
chose her "in Christ before the foundation of the world, to be holy
and blameless before him in love".137
493 The Fathers of the Eastern tradition call the
Mother of God "the All-Holy" (Panagia), and celebrate
her as "free from any stain of sin, as though fashioned by the Holy
Spirit and formed as a new creature".138 By the grace of
God Mary remained free of every personal sin her whole life long.
"Let it be done to me according to your word. . ."
494 At the announcement that she would give birth to
"the Son of the Most High" without knowing man, by the power
of the Holy Spirit, Mary responded with the obedience of faith, certain
that "with God nothing will be impossible": "Behold, I am
the handmaid of the Lord; let it be [done] to me according to your
word."139 Thus, giving her consent to God's word, Mary
becomes the mother of Jesus. Espousing the divine will for salvation
wholeheartedly, without a single sin to restrain her, she gave herself
entirely to the person and to the work of her Son; she did so in order
to serve the mystery of redemption with him and dependent on him, by
God's grace:140
-
As St. Irenaeus says, "Being obedient she became the cause of
salvation for herself and for the whole human race."141
Hence not a few of the early Fathers gladly assert. . .: "The
knot of Eve's disobedience was untied by Mary's obedience: what the
virgin Eve bound through her disbelief, Mary loosened by her
faith."142 Comparing her with Eve, they call Mary
"the Mother of the living" and frequently claim:
"Death through Eve, life through Mary."143
Mary's divine motherhood
495 Called in the Gospels "the mother of
Jesus", Mary is acclaimed by Elizabeth, at the prompting of the
Spirit and even before the birth of her son, as "the mother of my
Lord".144 In fact, the One whom she conceived as man by
the Holy Spirit, who truly became her Son according to the flesh, was
none other than the Father's eternal Son, the second person of the Holy
Trinity. Hence the Church confesses that Mary is truly "Mother of
God" (Theotokos).145
Mary's virginity
496 From the first formulations of her faith, the
Church has confessed that Jesus was conceived solely by the power of the
Holy Spirit in the womb of the Virgin Mary, affirming also the corporeal
aspect of this event: Jesus was conceived "by the Holy Spirit
without human seed".146 The Fathers see in the virginal
conception the sign that it truly was the Son of God who came in a
humanity like our own. Thus St. Ignatius of Antioch at the beginning of
the second century says:
-
You are firmly convinced about our Lord, who is truly of the race
of David according to the flesh, Son of God according to the will
and power of God, truly born of a virgin,. . . he was truly nailed
to a tree for us in his flesh under Pontius Pilate. . . he truly
suffered, as he is also truly risen.147
497 The Gospel accounts understand the virginal
conception of Jesus as a divine work that surpasses all human
understanding and possibility:148 "That which is
conceived in her is of the Holy Spirit", said the angel to Joseph
about Mary his fiancee.149 The Church sees here the
fulfillment of the divine promise given through the prophet Isaiah:
"Behold, a virgin shall conceive and bear a son."150
498 People are sometimes troubled by the silence
of St. Mark's Gospel and the New Testament Epistles about Jesus'
virginal conception. Some might wonder if we were merely dealing
with legends or theological constructs not claiming to be history.
To this we must respond: Faith in the virginal conception of Jesus
met with the lively opposition, mockery or incomprehension of
non-believers, Jews and pagans alike;151 so it could
hardly have been motivated by pagan mythology or by some adaptation
to the ideas of the age. The meaning of this event is accessible
only to faith, which understands in it the "connection of these
mysteries with one another"152 in the totality of
Christ's mysteries, from his Incarnation to his Passover. St.
Ignatius of Antioch already bears witness to this connection:
"Mary's virginity and giving birth, and even the Lord's death
escaped the notice of the prince of this world: these three
mysteries worthy of proclamation were accomplished in God's
silence."153
Mary -- "ever-virgin"
499 The deepening of faith in the virginal
motherhood led the Church to confess Mary's real and perpetual virginity
even in the act of giving birth to the Son of God made man.154
In fact, Christ's birth "did not diminish his mother's virginal
integrity but sanctified it."155 And so the liturgy of
the Church celebrates Mary as Aeiparthenos, the
"Ever-virgin".156
500 Against this doctrine the objection is
sometimes raised that the Bible mentions brothers and sisters of
Jesus.157 The Church has always understood these passages
as not referring to other children of the Virgin Mary. In fact James
and Joseph, "brothers of Jesus", are the sons of another
Mary, a disciple of Christ, whom St. Matthew significantly calls
"the other Mary".158 They are close relations
of Jesus, according to an Old Testament expression.159
501 Jesus is Mary's only son, but her spiritual
motherhood extends to all men whom indeed he came to save: "The Son
whom she brought forth is he whom God placed as the first-born among
many brethren, that is, the faithful in whose generation and formation
she co-operates with a mother's love."160
Mary's virginal motherhood in God's plan
502 The eyes of faith can discover in the context of
the whole of Revelation the mysterious reasons why God in his saving
plan wanted his Son to be born of a virgin. These reasons touch both on
the person of Christ and his redemptive mission, and on the welcome Mary
gave that mission on behalf of all men.
503 Mary's virginity manifests God's absolute
initiative in the Incarnation. Jesus has only God as Father. "He
was never estranged from the Father because of the human nature which
he assumed. . . He is naturally Son of the Father as to his divinity
and naturally son of his mother as to his humanity, but properly Son
of the Father in both natures."161
504 Jesus is conceived by the Holy Spirit in the
Virgin Mary's womb because he is the New Adam, who inaugurates the new
creation: "The first man was from the earth, a man of dust; the
second man is from heaven."162 From his conception,
Christ's humanity is filled with the Holy Spirit, for God "gives
him the Spirit without measure."163 From "his
fullness" as the head of redeemed humanity "we have all
received, grace upon grace."164
505 By his virginal conception, Jesus, the New
Adam, ushers in the new birth of children adopted in the Holy
Spirit through faith. "How can this be?"165
Participation in the divine life arises "not of blood nor of the
will of the flesh nor of the will of man, but of God".166
The acceptance of this life is virginal because it is entirely the
Spirit's gift to man. The spousal character of the human vocation in
relation to God167 is fulfilled perfectly in Mary's
virginal motherhood.
506 Mary is a virgin because her virginity is the
sign of her faith "unadulterated by any doubt", and of
her undivided gift of herself to God's will.168 It is her
faith that enables her to become the mother of the Savior: "Mary
is more blessed because she embraces faith in Christ than because she
conceives the flesh of Christ."169
507 At once virgin and mother, Mary is the symbol
and the most perfect realization of the Church: "the Church
indeed. . . by receiving the word of God in faith becomes herself a
mother. By preaching and Baptism she brings forth sons, who are
conceived by the Holy Spirit and born of God, to a new and immortal
life. She herself is a virgin, who keeps in its entirety and purity
the faith she pledged to her spouse."170
IN BRIEF
508 From among the descendants of Eve, God chose the
Virgin Mary to be the mother of his Son. "Full of grace", Mary
is "the most excellent fruit of redemption" (SC 103):
from the first instant of her conception, she was totally preserved from
the stain of original sin and she remained pure from all personal sin
throughout her life.
509 Mary is truly "Mother of God" since
she is the mother of the eternal Son of God made man, who is God
himself.
510 Mary "remained a virgin in conceiving her
Son, a virgin in giving birth to him, a virgin in carrying him, a virgin
in nursing him at her breast, always a virgin" (St. Augustine, Serm.
186, 1: PL 38, 999): with her whole being she is "the handmaid of
the Lord" (Lk 1:38).
511 The Virgin Mary "cooperated through free
faith and obedience in human salvation" (LG 56). She uttered her
yes "in the name of all human nature" (St. Thomas Aquinas, STh
III, 30, 1). By her obedience she became the new Eve, mother of the
living.
Paragraph 3. The Mysteries of Christ's Life
512 Concerning Christ's life the Creed speaks only
about the mysteries of the Incarnation (conception and birth) and
Paschal mystery (passion, crucifixion, death, burial, descent into hell,
resurrection and ascension). It says nothing explicitly about the
mysteries of Jesus' hidden or public life, but the articles of faith
concerning his Incarnation and Passover do shed light on the whole of
his earthly life. "All that Jesus did and taught, from the
beginning until the day when he was taken up to heaven",171
is to be seen in the light of the mysteries of Christmas and Easter.
513 According to circumstances catechesis will make
use of all the richness of the mysteries of Jesus. Here it is enough
merely to indicate some elements common to all the mysteries of Christ's
life (I), in order then to sketch the principal mysteries of Jesus'
hidden (II) and public (III) life.
I. CHRIST'S WHOLE LIFE IS MYSTERY
514 Many things about Jesus of interest to human
curiosity do not figure in the Gospels. Almost nothing is said about his
hidden life at Nazareth, and even a great part of his public life is not
recounted.172 What is written in the Gospels was set down
there "so that you may believe that Jesus is the Christ, the Son of
God, and that believing you may have life in his name."173
515 The Gospels were written by men who were among
the first to have the faith174 and wanted to share it with
others. Having known in faith who Jesus is, they could see and make
others see the traces of his mystery in all his earthly life. From the
swaddling clothes of his birth to the vinegar of his Passion and the
shroud of his Resurrection, everything in Jesus' life was a sign of his
mystery.175 His deeds, miracles and words all revealed that
"in him the whole fullness of deity dwells bodily."176
His humanity appeared as "sacrament", that is, the sign and
instrument, of his divinity and of the salvation he brings: what was
visible in his earthly life leads to the invisible mystery of his divine
sonship and redemptive mission
Characteristics common to Jesus' mysteries
516 Christ's whole earthly life - his words and
deeds, his silences and sufferings, indeed his manner of being and
speaking - is Revelation of the Father. Jesus can say:
"Whoever has seen me has seen the Father", and the Father can
say: "This is my Son, my Chosen; listen to him!"177
Because our Lord became man in order to do his Father's will, even the
least characteristics of his mysteries manifest "God's love. . .
among us".178
517 Christ's whole life is a mystery of redemption.
Redemption comes to us above all through the blood of his cross,179
but this mystery is at work throughout Christ's entire life:
- already in his Incarnation through which by becoming poor he
enriches us with his poverty;180
- in his hidden life which by his submission atones for our
disobedience;181
- in his word which purifies its hearers;182
- in his healings and exorcisms by which "he took our
infirmities and bore our diseases";183
- and in his Resurrection by which he justifies us.184
518 Christ's whole life is a mystery of
recapitulation. All Jesus did, said and suffered had for its aim
restoring fallen man to his original vocation:
-
When Christ became incarnate and was made man, he recapitulated in
himself the long history of mankind and procured for us a
"short cut" to salvation, so that what we had lost in
Adam, that is, being in the image and likeness of God, we might
recover in Christ Jesus.185 For this reason Christ
experienced all the stages of life, thereby giving communion with
God to all men.186
Our communion in the mysteries of Jesus
519 All Christ's riches "are for every
individual and are everybody's property."187 Christ did
not live his life for himself but for us, from his Incarnation "for
us men and for our salvation" to his death "for our sins"
and Resurrection "for our justification".188 He is
still "our advocate with the Father", who "always lives
to make intercession" for us.189 He remains ever
"in the presence of God on our behalf, bringing before him all that
he lived and suffered for us."190
520 In all of his life Jesus presents himself as our
model. He is "the perfect man",191 who invites
us to become his disciples and follow him. In humbling himself, he has
given us an example to imitate, through his prayer he draws us to pray,
and by his poverty he calls us to accept freely the privation and
persecutions that may come our way.192
521 Christ enables us to live in him all
that he himself lived, and he lives it in us. "By his
Incarnation, he, the Son of God, has in a certain way united himself
with each man."193 We are called only to become one with
him, for he enables us as the members of his Body to share in what he
lived for us in his flesh as our model:
-
We must continue to accomplish in ourselves the stages of Jesus'
life and his mysteries and often to beg him to perfect and realize
them in us and in his whole Church. . . For it is the plan of the
Son of God to make us and the whole Church partake in his mysteries
and to extend them to and continue them in us and in his whole
Church. This is his plan for fulfilling his mysteries in us.194
II. THE MYSTERIES OF JESUS' INFANCY AND HIDDEN LIFE
The preparations
522 The coming of God's Son to earth is an event of
such immensity that God willed to prepare for it over centuries. He
makes everything converge on Christ: all the rituals and sacrifices,
figures and symbols of the "First Covenant".195 He
announces him through the mouths of the prophets who succeeded one
another in Israel. Moreover, he awakens in the hearts of the pagans a
dim expectation of this coming.
523 St. John the Baptist is the Lord's
immediate precursor or forerunner, sent to prepare his way.196
"Prophet of the Most High", John surpasses all the prophets,
of whom he is the last.197 He inaugurates the Gospel, already
from his mother's womb welcomes the coming of Christ, and rejoices in
being "the friend of the bridegroom", whom he points out as
"the Lamb of God, who takes away the sin of the world".198
Going before Jesus "in the spirit and power of Elijah", John
bears witness to Christ in his preaching, by his Baptism of conversion,
and through his martyrdom.199
524 When the Church celebrates the liturgy of
Advent each year, she makes present this ancient expectancy of the
Messiah, for by sharing in the long preparation for the Savior's first
coming, the faithful renew their ardent desire for his second coming.200
By celebrating the precursor's birth and martyrdom, the Church unites
herself to his desire: "He must increase, but I must
decrease."201
The Christmas mystery
525 Jesus was born in a humble stable, into a poor
family.202 Simple shepherds were the first witnesses to this
event. In this poverty heaven's glory was made manifest.203
The Church never tires of singing the glory of this night:
-
The Virgin today brings into the world the Eternal
And the earth offers a cave to the Inaccessible.
The angels and shepherds praise him
And the magi advance with the star,
For you are born for us,
Little Child, God eternal!204
526 To become a child in relation to God is the
condition for entering the kingdom.205 For this, we must
humble ourselves and become little. Even more: to become "children
of God" we must be "born from above" or "born of
God".206 Only when Christ is formed in us will the
mystery of Christmas be fulfilled in us.207 Christmas is the
mystery of this "marvelous exchange":
-
O marvelous exchange! Man's Creator has become man, born of the
Virgin. We have been made sharers in the divinity of Christ who
humbled himself to share our humanity.208
The mysteries of Jesus' infancy
527 Jesus' circumcision, on the eighth day
after his birth,209 is the sign of his incorporation into
Abraham's descendants, into the people of the covenant. It is the sign
of his submission to the Law210 and his deputation to
Israel's worship, in which he will participate throughout his life. This
sign prefigures that "circumcision of Christ" which is
Baptism.211
528 The Epiphany is the manifestation of
Jesus as Messiah of Israel, Son of God and Savior of the world. The
great feast of Epiphany celebrates the adoration of Jesus by the wise
men (magi) from the East, together with his baptism in the
Jordan and the wedding feast at Cana in Galilee.212 In the
magi, representatives of the neighboring pagan religions, the Gospel
sees the first-fruits of the nations, who welcome the good news of
salvation through the Incarnation. The magi's coming to Jerusalem in
order to pay homage to the king of the Jews shows that they seek in
Israel, in the messianic light of the star of David, the one who will be
king of the nations.213 Their coming means that pagans can
discover Jesus and worship him as Son of God and Savior of the world
only by turning towards the Jews and receiving from them the messianic
promise as contained in the Old Testament.214 The Epiphany
shows that "the full number of the nations" now takes its
"place in the family of the patriarchs", and acquires Israelitica
dignitas215 (is made "worthy of the heritage of
Israel").
529 The presentation of Jesus in the temple
shows him to be the firstborn Son who belongs to the Lord.216
With Simeon and Anna, all Israel awaits its encounter with the
Savior-the name given to this event in the Byzantine tradition. Jesus is
recognized as the long-expected Messiah, the "light to the
nations" and the "glory of Israel", but also "a sign
that is spoken against". The sword of sorrow predicted for Mary
announces Christ's perfect and unique oblation on the cross that will
impart the salvation God had "prepared in the presence of all
peoples".
530 The flight into Egypt and the massacre
of the innocents217 make manifest the opposition of darkness
to the light: "He came to his own home, and his own people received
him not."218 Christ's whole life was lived under the
sign of persecution. His own share it with him.219 Jesus'
departure from Egypt recalls the exodus and presents him as the
definitive liberator of God's people.220
The mysteries of Jesus' hidden life
531 During the greater part of his life Jesus shared
the condition of the vast majority of human beings: a daily life spent
without evident greatness, a life of manual labor. His religious life
was that of a Jew obedient to the law of God,221 a life in
the community. From this whole period it is revealed to us that Jesus
was "obedient" to his parents and that he "increased in
wisdom and in stature, and in favor with God and man."222
532 Jesus' obedience to his mother and legal father
fulfils the fourth commandment perfectly and was the temporal image of
his filial obedience to his Father in heaven. The everyday obedience of
Jesus to Joseph and Mary both announced and anticipated the obedience of
Holy Thursday: "Not my will. . ."223 The obedience
of Christ in the daily routine of his hidden life was already
inaugurating his work of restoring what the disobedience of Adam had
destroyed.224
533 The hidden life at Nazareth allows everyone to
enter into fellowship with Jesus by the most ordinary events of daily
life:
-
The home of Nazareth is the school where we begin to understand
the life of Jesus - the school of the Gospel. First, then, a lesson
of silence. May esteem for silence, that admirable and
indispensable condition of mind, revive in us. . . A lesson on family
life. May Nazareth teach us what family life is, its communion
of love, its austere and simple beauty, and its sacred and
inviolable character... A lesson of work. Nazareth, home of
the "Carpenter's Son", in you I would choose to understand
and proclaim the severe and redeeming law of human work. . . To
conclude, I want to greet all the workers of the world, holding up
to them their great pattern their brother who is God.225
534 The finding of Jesus in the temple is
the only event that breaks the silence of the Gospels about the hidden
years of Jesus.226 Here Jesus lets us catch a glimpse of the
mystery of his total consecration to a mission that flows from his
divine sonship: "Did you not know that I must be about my Father's
work?"227 Mary and Joseph did not understand these
words, but they accepted them in faith. Mary "kept all these things
in her heart" during the years Jesus remained hidden in the silence
of an ordinary life.
III. THE MYSTERIES OF JESUS' PUBLIC LIFE
The baptism of Jesus
535 Jesus' public life begins with his baptism by
John in the Jordan.228 John preaches "a baptism of
repentance for the forgiveness of sins".229 A crowd of
sinners230 - tax collectors and soldiers, Pharisees and
Sadducees, and prostitutes- come to be baptized by him. "Then Jesus
appears." The Baptist hesitates, but Jesus insists and receives
baptism. Then the Holy Spirit, in the form of a dove, comes upon Jesus
and a voice from heaven proclaims, "This is my beloved Son."231
This is the manifestation ("Epiphany") of Jesus as Messiah of
Israel and Son of God.
536 The baptism of Jesus is on his part the
acceptance and inauguration of his mission as God's suffering Servant.
He allows himself to be numbered among sinners; he is already "the
Lamb of God, who takes away the sin of the world".232
Already he is anticipating the "baptism" of his bloody death.233
Already he is coming to "fulfil all righteousness", that is,
he is submitting himself entirely to his Father's will: out of love he
consents to this baptism of death for the remission of our sins.234
The Father's voice responds to the Son's acceptance, proclaiming his
entire delight in his Son.235 The Spirit whom Jesus possessed
in fullness from his conception comes to "rest on him".236
Jesus will be the source of the Spirit for all mankind. At his baptism
"the heavens were opened"237 - the heavens that
Adam's sin had closed - and the waters were sanctified by the descent of
Jesus and the Spirit, a prelude to the new creation.
537 Through Baptism the Christian is sacramentally
assimilated to Jesus, who in his own baptism anticipates his death and
resurrection. The Christian must enter into this mystery of humble
self-abasement and repentance, go down into the water with Jesus in
order to rise with him, be reborn of water and the Spirit so as to
become the Father's beloved son in the Son and "walk in newness of
life":238
-
Let us be buried with Christ by Baptism to rise with him; let us
go down with him to be raised with him; and let us rise with him to
be glorified with him.239
Everything that happened to Christ lets us know that, after the
bath of water, the Holy Spirit swoops down upon us from high heaven
and that, adopted by the Father's voice, we become sons of God.240
Jesus' temptations
538 The Gospels speak of a time of solitude for
Jesus in the desert immediately after his baptism by John. Driven by the
Spirit into the desert, Jesus remains there for forty days without
eating; he lives among wild beasts, and angels minister to him.241
At the end of this time Satan tempts him three times, seeking to
compromise his filial attitude toward God. Jesus rebuffs these attacks,
which recapitulate the temptations of Adam in Paradise and of Israel in
the desert, and the devil leaves him "until an opportune
time".242
539 The evangelists indicate the salvific meaning of
this mysterious event: Jesus is the new Adam who remained faithful just
where the first Adam had given in to temptation. Jesus fulfils Israel's
vocation perfectly: in contrast to those who had once provoked God
during forty years in the desert, Christ reveals himself as God's
Servant, totally obedient to the divine will. In this, Jesus is the
devil's conqueror: he "binds the strong man" to take back his
plunder.243 Jesus' victory over the tempter in the desert
anticipates victory at the Passion, the supreme act of obedience of his
filial love for the Father.
540 Jesus' temptation reveals the way in which the
Son of God is Messiah, contrary to the way Satan proposes to him and the
way men wish to attribute to him.244 This is why Christ
vanquished the Tempter for us: "For we have not a high
priest who is unable to sympathize with our weaknesses, but one who in
every respect has been tested as we are, yet without sinning."245
By the solemn forty days of Lent the Church unites herself each
year to the mystery of Jesus in the desert.
"The kingdom of God is at hand"
541 "Now after John was arrested, Jesus came
into Galilee, preaching the gospel of God, and saying: 'The time is
fulfilled, and the kingdom of God is at hand: repent, and believe in the
gospel.'"246 "To carry out the will of the Father
Christ inaugurated the kingdom of heaven on earth."247
Now the Father's will is "to raise up men to share in his own
divine life".248 He does this by gathering men around
his Son Jesus Christ. This gathering is the Church, "on earth the
seed and beginning of that kingdoms".249
542 Christ stands at the heart of this gathering of
men into the "family of God". By his word, through signs that
manifest the reign of God, and by sending out his disciples, Jesus calls
all people to come together around him. But above all in the great
Paschal mystery - his death on the cross and his Resurrection - he would
accomplish the coming of his kingdom. "And I, when I am lifted up
from the earth, will draw all men to myself." Into this union with
Christ all men are called.250
The proclamation of the kingdom of God
543 Everyone is called to enter the
kingdom. First announced to the children of Israel, this messianic
kingdom is intended to accept men of all nations.251 To enter
it, one must first accept Jesus' word:
-
The word of the Lord is compared to a seed which is sown in a
field; those who hear it with faith and are numbered among the
little flock of Christ have truly received the kingdom. Then, by its
own power, the seed sprouts and grows until the harvest.252
544 The kingdom belongs to the poor and lowly,
which means those who have accepted it with humble hearts. Jesus is sent
to "preach good news to the poor";253 he declares
them blessed, for "theirs is the kingdom of heaven."254
To them - the "little ones" the Father is pleased to reveal
what remains hidden from the wise and the learned.255 Jesus
shares the life of the poor, from the cradle to the cross; he
experiences hunger, thirst and privation.256 Jesus identifies
himself with the poor of every kind and makes active love toward them
the condition for entering his kingdom.257
545 Jesus invites sinners to the table of
the kingdom: "I came not to call the righteous, but sinners."258
He invites them to that conversion without which one cannot enter the
kingdom, but shows them in word and deed his Father's boundless mercy
for them and the vast "joy in heaven over one sinner who
repents".259 The supreme proof of his love will be the
sacrifice of his own life "for the forgiveness of sins".260
546 Jesus' invitation to enter his kingdom comes in
the form of parables, a characteristic feature of his teaching.261
Through his parables he invites people to the feast of the kingdom, but
he also asks for a radical choice: to gain the kingdom, one must give
everything.262 Words are not enough, deeds are required.263
The parables are like mirrors for man: will he be hard soil or good
earth for the word?264 What use has he made of the talents he
has received?265 Jesus and the presence of the kingdom in
this world are secretly at the heart of the parables. One must enter the
kingdom, that is, become a disciple of Christ, in order to "know
the secrets of the kingdom of heaven".266 For those who
stay "outside", everything remains enigmatic.267
The signs of the kingdom of God
547 Jesus accompanies his words with many
"mighty works and wonders and signs", which manifest that the
kingdom is present in him and attest that he was the promised Messiah.268
548 The signs worked by Jesus attest that the Father
has sent him. They invite belief in him.269 To those who turn
to him in faith, he grants what they ask.270 So miracles
strengthen faith in the One who does his Father's works; they bear
witness that he is the Son of God.271 But his miracles can
also be occasions for "offence";272 they are not
intended to satisfy people's curiosity or desire for magic Despite his
evident miracles some people reject Jesus; he is even accused of acting
by the power of demons.273
549 By freeing some individuals from the earthly
evils of hunger, injustice, illness and death,274 Jesus
performed messianic signs. Nevertheless he did not come to abolish all
evils here below,275 but to free men from the gravest
slavery, sin, which thwarts them in their vocation as God's sons and
causes all forms of human bondage.276
550 The coming of God's kingdom means the defeat of
Satan's: "If it is by the Spirit of God that I cast out demons,
then the kingdom of God has come upon you."277 Jesus' exorcisms
free some individuals from the domination of demons. They
anticipate Jesus' great victory over "the ruler of this
world".278 The kingdom of God will be definitively
established through Christ's cross: "God reigned from the
wood."279
"The keys of the kingdom"
551 From the beginning of his public life Jesus
chose certain men, twelve in number, to be with him and to participate
in his mission.280 He gives the Twelve a share in his
authority and 'sent them out to preach the kingdom of God and to
heal."281 They remain associated for ever with Christ's
kingdom, for through them he directs the Church:
-
As my Father appointed a kingdom for me, so do I appoint for you
that you may eat and drink at my table in my kingdom, and sit on
thrones judging the twelve tribes of Israel.282
552 Simon Peter holds the first place in the college
of the Twelve;283 Jesus entrusted a unique mission to him.
Through a revelation from the Father, Peter had confessed: "You are
the Christ, the Son of the living God." Our Lord then declared to
him: "You are Peter, and on this rock I will build my Church, and
the gates of Hades will not prevail against it."284
Christ, the "living Stone",285 thus assures his
Church, built on Peter, of victory over the powers of death. Because of
the faith he confessed Peter will remain the unshakable rock of the
Church. His mission will be to keep this faith from every lapse and to
strengthen his brothers in it.286
553 Jesus entrusted a specific authority to Peter:
"I will give you the keys of the kingdom of heaven, and whatever
you bind on earth shall be bound in heaven, and whatever you loose on
earth shall be loosed in heaven."287 The "power of
the keys" designates authority to govern the house of God, which is
the Church. Jesus, the Good Shepherd, confirmed this mandate after his
Resurrection: "Feed my sheep."288 The power to
"bind and loose" connotes the authority to absolve sins, to
pronounce doctrinal judgements, and to make disciplinary decisions in
the Church. Jesus entrusted this authority to the Church through the
ministry of the apostles289 and in particular through the
ministry of Peter, the only one to whom he specifically entrusted the
keys of the kingdom.
A foretaste of the Kingdom: the Transfiguration
554 From the day Peter confessed that Jesus is the
Christ, the Son of the living God, the Master "began to show his
disciples that he must go to Jerusalem and suffer many things. . . and
be killed, and on the third day be raised."290 Peter
scorns this prediction, nor do the others understand it any better than
he.291 In this context the mysterious episode of Jesus'
Transfiguration takes place on a high mountain,292 before
three witnesses chosen by himself: Peter, James and John. Jesus' face
and clothes become dazzling with light, and Moses and Elijah appear,
speaking "of his departure, which he was to accomplish at
Jerusalem".293 A cloud covers him and a voice from
heaven says: "This is my Son, my Chosen; listen to him!"294
555 For a moment Jesus discloses his divine glory,
confirming Peter's confession. He also reveals that he will have to go
by the way of the cross at Jerusalem in order to "enter into his
glory".295 Moses and Elijah had seen God's glory on the
Mountain; the Law and the Prophets had announced the Messiah's
sufferings.296 Christ's Passion is the will of the Father:
the Son acts as God's servant;297 the cloud indicates the
presence of the Holy Spirit. "The whole Trinity appeared: the
Father in the voice; the Son in the man; the Spirit in the shining
cloud."298
-
You were transfigured on the mountain, and your disciples, as much
as they were capable of it, beheld your glory, O Christ our God, so
that when they should see you crucified they would understand that
your Passion was voluntary, and proclaim to the world that you truly
are the splendor of the Father.299
556 On the threshold of the public life: the
baptism; on the threshold of the Passover: the Transfiguration. Jesus'
baptism proclaimed "the mystery of the first regeneration",
namely, our Baptism; the Transfiguration "is the sacrament of the
second regeneration": our own Resurrection.300 From now
on we share in the Lord's Resurrection through the Spirit who acts in
the sacraments of the Body of Christ. The Transfiguration gives us a
foretaste of Christ's glorious coming, when he "will change our
lowly body to be like his glorious body."301 But it also
recalls that "it is through many persecutions that we must enter
the kingdom of God":302
-
Peter did not yet understand this when he wanted to remain with
Christ on the mountain. It has been reserved for you, Peter, but for
after death. For now, Jesus says: "Go down to toil on earth, to
serve on earth, to be scorned and crucified on earth. Life goes down
to be killed; Bread goes down to suffer hunger; the Way goes down to
be exhausted on his journey; the Spring goes down to suffer thirst;
and you refuse to suffer?"303
Jesus' ascent to Jerusalem
557 "When the days drew near for him to be
taken up [Jesus] set his face to go to Jerusalem."304 By
this decision he indicated that he was going up to Jerusalem prepared to
die there. Three times he had announced his Passion and Resurrection;
now, heading toward Jerusalem, Jesus says: "It cannot be that a
prophet should perish away from Jerusalem."305
558 Jesus recalls the martyrdom of the prophets who
had been put to death in Jerusalem. Nevertheless he persists in calling
Jerusalem to gather around him: "How often would I have gathered
your children together as a hen gathers her brood under her wings, and
you would not!"306 When Jerusalem comes into view he
weeps over her and expresses once again his heart's desire: "Would
that even today you knew the things that make for peace! But now they
are hid from your eyes."307
Jesus' messianic entrance into Jerusalem
559 How will Jerusalem welcome her Messiah? Although
Jesus had always refused popular attempts to make him king, he chooses
the time and prepares the details for his messianic entry into the city
of "his father David".308 Acclaimed as son of
David, as the one who brings salvation (Hosanna means
"Save!" or "Give salvation!"), the "King of
glory" enters his City "riding on an ass".309
Jesus conquers the Daughter of Zion, a figure of his Church, neither by
ruse nor by violence, but by the humility that bears witness to the
truth.310 And so the subjects of his kingdom on that day are
children and God's poor, who acclaim him as had the angels when they
announced him to the shepherds.311 Their acclamation,
"Blessed be he who comes in the name of the Lord",312
is taken up by the Church in the "Sanctus" of the
Eucharistic liturgy that introduces the memorial of the Lord's Passover.
560 Jesus' entry into Jerusalem manifested
the coming of the kingdom that the King-Messiah was going to accomplish
by the Passover of his Death and Resurrection. It is with the
celebration of that entry on Palm Sunday that the Church's liturgy
solemnly opens Holy Week.
IN BRIEF
561 "The whole of Christ's life was a continual
teaching: his silences, his miracles, his gestures, his prayer, his love
for people, his special affection for the little and the poor, his
acceptance of the total sacrifice on the Cross for the redemption of the
world, and his Resurrection are the actualization of his word and the
fulfillment of Revelation" John Paul II, CT 9).
562 Christ's disciples are to conform themselves to
him until he is formed in them (cf. Gal 4:19). "For this
reason we, who have been made like to him, who have died with him and
risen with him, are taken up into the mysteries of his life, until we
reign together with him" (LG 7 # 4).
563 No one, whether shepherd or wise man, can
approach God here below except by kneeling before the manger at
Bethlehem and adoring him hidden in the weakness of a new-born child.
564 By his obedience to Mary and Joseph, as well as
by his humble work during the long years in Nazareth, Jesus gives us the
example of holiness in the daily life of family and work.
565 From the beginning of his public life, at his
baptism, Jesus is the "Servant", wholly consecrated to the
redemptive work that he will accomplish by the "baptism" of
his Passion.
566 The temptation in the desert shows Jesus, the
humble Messiah, who triumphs over Satan by his total adherence to the
plan of salvation willed by the Father.
567 The kingdom of heaven was inaugurated on earth
by Christ. "This kingdom shone out before men in the word, in the
works and in the presence of Christ" (LG 5). The Church is
the seed and beginning of this kingdom. Its keys are entrusted to Peter.
568 Christ's Transfiguration aims at strengthening
the apostles' faith in anticipation of his Passion: the ascent on to the
"high mountain" prepares for the ascent to Calvary. Christ,
Head of the Church, manifests what his Body contains and radiates in the
sacraments: "the hope of glory" (Col 1:27; cf.: St.
Leo the Great, Sermo 51, 3: PL 54, 310C).
569 Jesus went up to Jerusalem voluntarily, knowing
well that there he would die a violent death because of the opposition
of sinners (cf. Heb 12:3).
570 Jesus' entry into Jerusalem manifests the coming
of the kingdom that the Messiah-King, welcomed into his city by children
and the humble of heart, is going to accomplish by the Passover of his
Death and Resurrection.
ARTICLE 4
"JESUS CHRIST SUFFERED UNDER PONTIUS PILATE, WAS CRUCIFIED, DIED,
AND WAS BURIED"
571 The Paschal mystery of Christ's cross and
Resurrection stands at the center of the Good News that the apostles,
and the Church following them, are to proclaim to the world. God's
saving plan was accomplished "once for all"313 by
the redemptive death of his Son Jesus Christ.
572 The Church remains faithful to the
interpretation of "all the Scriptures" that Jesus gave both
before and after his Passover: "Was it not necessary that the
Christ should suffer these things and enter into his glory?"314
Jesus' sufferings took their historical, concrete form from the fact
that he was "rejected by the elders and the chief priests and the
scribes", who handed "him to the Gentiles to be mocked and
scourged and crucified".315
573 Faith can therefore try to examine the
circumstances of Jesus' death, faithfully handed on by the Gospels316
and illuminated by other historical sources, the better to understand
the meaning of the Redemption.
Paragraph 1. Jesus and Israel
574 From the beginning of Jesus' public ministry,
certain Pharisees and partisans of Herod together with priests and
scribes agreed together to destroy him.317 Because of certain
acts of his expelling demons, forgiving sins, healing on the sabbath
day, his novel interpretation of the precepts of the Law regarding
purity, and his familiarity with tax collectors and public sinners318
-- some ill-intentioned persons suspected Jesus of demonic possession.319
He is accused of blasphemy and false prophecy, religious crimes which
the Law punished with death by stoning.320
575 Many of Jesus' deeds and words constituted a
"sign of contradiction",321 but more so for the
religious authorities in Jerusalem, whom the Gospel according to John
often calls simply "the Jews",322 than for the
ordinary People of God.323 To be sure, Christ's relations
with the Pharisees were not exclusively polemical. Some Pharisees warn
him of the danger he was courting;324 Jesus praises some of
them, like the scribe of Mark 12:34, and dines several times at
their homes.325 Jesus endorses some of the teachings imparted
by this religious elite of God's people: the resurrection of the dead,326
certain forms of piety (almsgiving, fasting and prayer),327
the custom of addressing God as Father, and the centrality of the
commandment to love God and neighbor.328
576 In the eyes of many in Israel, Jesus seems to be
acting against essential institutions of the Chosen People:
- submission to the whole of the Law in its written commandments and,
for the Pharisees, in the interpretation of oral tradition;
- the centrality of the Temple at Jerusalem as the holy place where
God's presence dwells in a special way;
- faith in the one God whose glory no man can share.
I. JESUS AND THE LAW
577 At the beginning of the Sermon on the Mount
Jesus issued a solemn warning in which he presented God's law, given on
Sinai during the first covenant, in light of the grace of the New
Covenant:
-
Do not think that I have come to abolish the law or the prophets:
I have come not to abolish but to fulfill. For truly I tell you,
until heaven and earth pass away, not one letter, not one stroke of
a letter, will pass from the law, until all is accomplished.
Therefore, whoever breaks one of the least of these commandments,
and teaches others to do the same, will be called least in the
kingdom of heaven; but whoever does them and teaches them will be
called great in the kingdom of heaven.329
578 Jesus, Israel's Messiah and therefore the
greatest in the kingdom of heaven, was to fulfill the Law by keeping it
in its all embracing detail - according to his own words, down to
"the least of these commandments".330 He is in fact
the only one who could keep it perfectly.331 On their own
admission the Jews were never able to observe the Law in its entirety
without violating the least of its precepts.332 This is why
every year on the Day of Atonement the children of Israel ask God's
forgiveness for their transgressions of the Law. The Law indeed makes up
one inseparable whole, and St. James recalls, "Whoever keeps the
whole law but fails in one point has become guilty of all of it."333
579 This principle of integral observance of the Law
not only in letter but in spirit was dear to the Pharisees. By giving
Israel this principle they had led many Jews of Jesus' time to an
extreme religious zeal.334 This zeal, were it not to lapse
into "hypocritical" casuistry,335 could only
prepare the People for the unprecedented intervention of God through the
perfect fulfillment of the Law by the only Righteous One in place of all
sinners.336
580 The perfect fulfillment of the Law could be the
work of none but the divine legislator, born subject to the Law in the
person of the Son.337 In Jesus, the Law no longer appears
engraved on tables of stone but "upon the heart" of the
Servant who becomes "a covenant to the people", because he
will "faithfully bring forth justice".338 Jesus
fulfills the Law to the point of taking upon himself "the curse of
the Law" incurred by those who do not "abide by the things
written in the book of the Law, and do them", for his death took
place to redeem them "from the transgressions under the first
covenant".339
581 The Jewish people and their spiritual leaders
viewed Jesus as a rabbi.340 He often argued within the
framework of rabbinical interpretation of the Law.341 Yet
Jesus could not help but offend the teachers of the Law, for he was not
content to propose his interpretation alongside theirs but taught the
people "as one who had authority, and not as their scribes".342
In Jesus, the same Word of God that had resounded on Mount Sinai to give
the written Law to Moses, made itself heard anew on the Mount of the
Beatitudes.343 Jesus did not abolish the Law but fulfilled it
by giving its ultimate interpretation in a divine way: "You have
heard that it was said to the men of old. . . But I say to you. .
."344 With this same divine authority, he disavowed
certain human traditions of the Pharisees that were "making void
the word of God".345
582 Going even further, Jesus perfects the dietary
law, so important in Jewish daily life, by revealing its pedagogical
meaning through a divine interpretation: "Whatever goes into a man
from outside cannot defile him. . . (Thus he declared all foods clean.).
. . What comes out of a man is what defiles a man. For from within, out
of the heart of man, come evil thoughts. . ."346 In
presenting with divine authority the definitive interpretation of the
Law, Jesus found himself confronted by certain teachers of the Law who
did not accept his interpretation of the Law, guaranteed though it was
by the divine signs that accompanied it.347 This was the case
especially with the sabbath laws, for he recalls, often with rabbinical
arguments, that the sabbath rest is not violated by serving God and
neighbor,348 which his own healings did.
II. JESUS AND THE TEMPLE
583 Like the prophets before him Jesus expressed the
deepest respect for the Temple in Jerusalem. It was in the Temple that
Joseph and Mary presented him forty days after his birth.349
At the age of twelve he decided to remain in the Temple to remind his
parents that he must be about his Father's business.350 He
went there each year during his hidden life at least for Passover.351
His public ministry itself was patterned by his pilgrimages to Jerusalem
for the great Jewish feasts.352
584 Jesus went up to the Temple as the privileged
place of encounter with God. For him, the Temple was the dwelling of his
Father, a house of prayer, and he was angered that its outer court had
become a place of commerce.353 He drove merchants out of it
because of jealous love for his Father: "You shall not make my
Father's house a house of trade. His disciples remembered that it was
written, 'Zeal for your house will consume me.'"354
After his Resurrection his apostles retained their reverence for the
Temple.355
585 On the threshold of his Passion Jesus announced
the coming destruction of this splendid building, of which there would
not remain "one stone upon another".356 By doing
so, he announced a sign of the last days, which were to begin with his
own Passover.357 But this prophecy would be distorted in its
telling by false witnesses during his interrogation at the high priest's
house, and would be thrown back at him as an insult when he was nailed
to the cross.358
586 Far from having been hostile to the Temple,
where he gave the essential part of his teaching, Jesus was willing to
pay the Temple-tax, associating with him Peter, whom he had just made
the foundation of his future Church.359 He even identified
himself with the Temple by presenting himself as God's definitive
dwelling-place among men.360 Therefore his being put to
bodily death361 presaged the destruction of the Temple, which
would manifest the dawning of a new age in the history of salvation:
"The hour is coming when neither on this mountain nor in Jerusalem
will you worship the Father."362
III. JESUS AND ISRAEL'S FAITH IN THE ONE GOD AND SAVIOR
587 If the Law and the Jerusalem Temple could be
occasions of opposition to Jesus by Israel's religious authorities, his
role in the redemption of sins, the divine work par excellence, was the
true stumbling-block for them.363
588 Jesus scandalized the Pharisees by eating with
tax collectors and sinners as familiarly as with themselves.364
Against those among them "who trusted in themselves that they were
righteous and despised others", Jesus affirmed: "I have not
come to call the righteous, but sinners to repentance."365
He went further by proclaiming before the Pharisees that, since sin is
universal, those who pretend not to need salvation are blind to
themselves.366
589 Jesus gave scandal above all when he identified
his merciful conduct toward sinners with God's own attitude toward them.367
He went so far as to hint that by sharing the table of sinners he was
admitting them to the messianic banquet.368 But it was most
especially by forgiving sins that Jesus placed the religious authorities
of Israel on the horns of a dilemma. Were they not entitled to demand in
consternation, "Who can forgive sins but God alone?"369
By forgiving sins Jesus either is blaspheming as a man who made himself
God's equal, or is speaking the truth and his person really does make
present and reveal God's name.370
590 Only the divine identity of Jesus' person can
justify so absolute a claim as "He who is not with me is against
me"; and his saying that there was in him "something greater
than Jonah,. . . greater than Solomon", something "greater
than the Temple"; his reminder that David had called the Messiah
his Lord,371 and his affirmations, "Before Abraham was,
I AM", and even "I and the Father are one."372
591 Jesus asked the religious authorities of
Jerusalem to believe in him because of the Father's works which he
accomplished.373 But such an act of faith must go through a
mysterious death to self, for a new "birth from above" under
the influence of divine grace.374 Such a demand for
conversion in the face of so surprising a fulfillment of the promises375
allows one to understand the Sanhedrin's tragic misunderstanding of
Jesus: they judged that he deserved the death sentence as a blasphemer.376
The members of the Sanhedrin were thus acting at the same time out of
"ignorance" and the "hardness" of their
"unbelief".377
IN BRIEF
592 Jesus did not abolish the Law of Sinai, but
rather fulfilled it (cf. Mt 5:17-19) with such perfection (cf. Jn
8:46) that he revealed its ultimate meaning (cf.: Mt 5:33)
and redeemed the transgressions against it (cf. Heb 9:15).
593 Jesus venerated the Temple by going up to it for
the Jewish feasts of pilgrimage, and with a jealous love he loved this
dwelling of God among men. The Temple prefigures his own mystery. When
he announces its destruction, it is as a manifestation of his own
execution and of the entry into a new age in the history of salvation,
when his Body would be the definitive Temple.
594 Jesus performed acts, such as pardoning sins,
that manifested him to be the Savior God himself (cf. Jn 5:16-18).
Certain Jews, who did not recognize God made man (cf. Jn 1:14),
saw in him only a man who made himself God (Jn 10:33), and
judged him as a blasphemer.
Paragraph 2. Jesus Died Crucified
I. THE TRIAL OF JESUS
Divisions among the Jewish authorities concerning Jesus
595 Among the religious authorities of Jerusalem,
not only were the Pharisee Nicodemus and the prominent Joseph of
Arimathea both secret disciples of Jesus, but there was also
long-standing dissension about him, so much so that St. John says of
these authorities on the very eve of Christ's Passion, "many.. .
believed in him", though very imperfectly.378 This is
not surprising, if one recalls that on the day after Pentecost "a
great many of the priests were obedient to the faith" and
"some believers. . . belonged to the party of the Pharisees",
to the point that St. James could tell St. Paul, "How many
thousands there are among the Jews of those who have believed; and they
are all zealous for the Law."379
596 The religious authorities in Jerusalem were not
unanimous about what stance to take towards Jesus.380 The
Pharisees threatened to excommunicate his followers.381 To
those who feared that "everyone will believe in him, and the Romans
will come and destroy both our holy place and our nation", the high
priest Caiaphas replied by prophesying: "It is expedient for you
that one man should die for the people, and that the whole nation should
not perish."382 The Sanhedrin, having declared Jesus
deserving of death as a blasphemer but having lost the right to put
anyone to death, hands him over to the Romans, accusing him of political
revolt, a charge that puts him in the same category as Barabbas who had
been accused of sedition.383 The chief priests also
threatened Pilate politically so that he would condemn Jesus to death.384
Jews are not collectively responsible for Jesus' death
597 The historical complexity of Jesus' trial is
apparent in the Gospel accounts. The personal sin of the participants
(Judas, the Sanhedrin, Pilate) is known to God alone. Hence we cannot
lay responsibility for the trial on the Jews in Jerusalem as a whole,
despite the outcry of a manipulated crowd and the global reproaches
contained in the apostles' calls to conversion after Pentecost.385
Jesus himself, in forgiving them on the cross, and Peter in following
suit, both accept "the ignorance" of the Jews of Jerusalem and
even of their leaders.386 Still less can we extend
responsibility to other Jews of different times and places, based merely
on the crowd's cry: "His blood be on us and on our children!",
a formula for ratifying a judicial sentence.387 As the Church
declared at the Second Vatican Council:
-
. . . [N]either all Jews indiscriminately at that time, nor Jews
today, can be charged with the crimes committed during his Passion.
. . [T]he Jews should not be spoken of as rejected or accursed as if
this followed from holy Scripture.388
All sinners were the authors of Christ's Passion
598 In her Magisterial teaching of the faith and in
the witness of her saints, the Church has never forgotten that
"sinners were the authors and the ministers of all the sufferings
that the divine Redeemer endured."389 Taking into
account the fact that our sins affect Christ himself,390 the
Church does not hesitate to impute to Christians the gravest
responsibility for the torments inflicted upon Jesus, a responsibility
with which they have all too often burdened the Jews alone:
-
We must regard as guilty all those who continue to relapse into
their sins. Since our sins made the Lord Christ suffer the torment
of the cross, those who plunge themselves into disorders and crimes
crucify the Son of God anew in their hearts (for he is in them) and
hold him up to contempt. And it can be seen that our crime in this
case is greater in us than in the Jews. As for them, according to
the witness of the Apostle, "None of the rulers of this age
understood this; for if they had, they would not have crucified the
Lord of glory." We, however, profess to know him. And when we
deny him by our deeds, we in some way seem to lay violent hands on
him.391
Nor did demons crucify him; it is you who have crucified him and
crucify him still, when you delight in your vices and sins.392
II. CHRIST'S REDEMPTIVE DEATH IN GOD'S PLAN OF SALVATION
"Jesus handed over according to the definite plan of
God"
599 Jesus' violent death was not the result of
chance in an unfortunate coincidence of circumstances, but is part of
the mystery of God's plan, as St. Peter explains to the Jews of
Jerusalem in his first sermon on Pentecost: "This Jesus [was]
delivered up according to the definite plan and foreknowledge of
God."393 This Biblical language does not mean that those
who handed him over were merely passive players in a scenario written in
advance by God.394
600 To God, all moments of time are present in their
immediacy. When therefore he establishes his eternal plan of
"predestination", he includes in it each person's free
response to his grace: "In this city, in fact, both Herod and
Pontius Pilate, with the Gentiles and the peoples of Israel, gathered
together against your holy servant Jesus, whom you anointed, to do
whatever your hand and your plan had predestined to take place."395
For the sake of accomplishing his plan of salvation, God permitted the
acts that flowed from their blindness.396
"He died for our sins in accordance with the
Scriptures"
601 The Scriptures had foretold this divine plan of
salvation through the putting to death of "the righteous one, my
Servant" as a mystery of universal redemption, that is, as the
ransom that would free men from the slavery of sin.397 Citing
a confession of faith that he himself had "received", St. Paul
professes that "Christ died for our sins in accordance with the
scriptures."398 In particular Jesus' redemptive death
fulfills Isaiah's prophecy of the suffering Servant.399
Indeed Jesus himself explained the meaning of his life and death in the
light of God's suffering Servant.400 After his Resurrection
he gave this interpretation of the Scriptures to the disciples at
Emmaus, and then to the apostles.401
"For our sake God made him to be sin"
602 Consequently, St. Peter can formulate the
apostolic faith in the divine plan of salvation in this way: "You
were ransomed from the futile ways inherited from your fathers... with
the precious blood of Christ, like that of a lamb without blemish or
spot. He was destined before the foundation of the world but was made
manifest at the end of the times for your sake."402
Man's sins, following on original sin, are punishable by death.403
By sending his own Son in the form of a slave, in the form of a fallen
humanity, on account of sin, God "made him to be sin who knew no
sin, so that in him we might become the righteousness of God."404
603 Jesus did not experience reprobation as if he
himself had sinned.405 But in the redeeming love that always
united him to the Father, he assumed us in the state of our waywardness
of sin, to the point that he could say in our name from the cross:
"My God, my God, why have you forsaken me?"406
Having thus established him in solidarity with us sinners, God "did
not spare his own Son but gave him up for us all", so that we might
be "reconciled to God by the death of his Son".407
God takes the initiative of universal redeeming love
604 By giving up his own Son for our sins, God
manifests that his plan for us is one of benevolent love, prior to any
merit on our part: "In this is love, not that we loved God but that
he loved us and sent his Son to be the expiation for our sins."408
God "shows his love for us in that while we were yet sinners Christ
died for us."409
605 At the end of the parable of the lost sheep
Jesus recalled that God's love excludes no one: "So it is not the
will of your Father who is in heaven that one of these little ones
should perish."410 He affirms that he came "to give
his life as a ransom for many"; this last term is not restrictive,
but contrasts the whole of humanity with the unique person of the
redeemer who hands himself over to save us.411 The Church,
following the apostles, teaches that Christ died for all men without
exception: "There is not, never has been, and never will be a
single human being for whom Christ did not suffer."412
III. CHRIST OFFERED HIMSELF TO HIS FATHER FOR OUR SINS
Christ's whole life is an offering to the Father
606 The Son of God, who came down "from heaven,
not to do [his] own will, but the will of him who sent [him]",413
said on coming into the world, "Lo, I have come to do your will, O
God." "And by that will we have been sanctified through the
offering of the body of Jesus Christ once for all."414
From the first moment of his Incarnation the Son embraces the Father's
plan of divine salvation in his redemptive mission: "My food is to
do the will of him who sent me, and to accomplish his work."415
The sacrifice of Jesus "for the sins of the whole world"416
expresses his loving communion with the Father. "The Father loves
me, because I lay down my life", said the Lord, "[for] I do as
the Father has commanded me, so that the world may know that I love the
Father."417
607 The desire to embrace his Father's plan of
redeeming love inspired Jesus' whole life,418 for his
redemptive passion was the very reason for his Incarnation. And so he
asked, "And what shall I say? 'Father, save me from this hour'? No,
for this purpose I have come to this hour."419 And
again, "Shall I not drink the cup which the Father has given
me?"420 From the cross, just before "It is
finished", he said, "I thirst."421
"The Lamb who takes away the sin of the world"
608 After agreeing to baptize him along with the
sinners, John the Baptist looked at Jesus and pointed him out as the
"Lamb of God, who takes away the sin of the world".422
By doing so, he reveals that Jesus is at the same time the suffering
Servant who silently allows himself to be led to the slaughter and who
bears the sin of the multitudes, and also the Paschal Lamb, the symbol
of Israel's redemption at the first Passover.423 Christ's
whole life expresses his mission: "to serve, and to give his life
as a ransom for many."424
Jesus freely embraced the Father's redeeming love
609 By embracing in his human heart the Father's
love for men, Jesus "loved them to the end", for "greater
love has no man than this, that a man lay down his life for his
friends."425 In suffering and death his humanity became
the free and perfect instrument of his divine love which desires the
salvation of men.426 Indeed, out of love for his Father and
for men, whom the Father wants to save, Jesus freely accepted his
Passion and death: "No one takes [my life] from me, but I lay it
down of my own accord."427 Hence the sovereign freedom
of God's Son as he went out to his death.428
At the Last Supper Jesus anticipated the free offering of his
life
610 Jesus gave the supreme expression of his free
offering of himself at the meal shared with the twelve Apostles "on
the night he was betrayed".429 On the eve of his
Passion, while still free, Jesus transformed this Last Supper with the
apostles into the memorial of his voluntary offering to the Father for
the salvation of men: "This is my body which is given for
you." "This is my blood of the covenant, which is poured out
for many for the forgiveness of sins."430
611 The Eucharist that Christ institutes at that
moment will be the memorial of his sacrifice.431 Jesus
includes the apostles in his own offering and bids them perpetuate it.432
By doing so, the Lord institutes his apostles as priests of the New
Covenant: "For their sakes I sanctify myself, so that they also may
be sanctified in truth."433
The agony at Gethsemani
612 The cup of the New Covenant, which Jesus
anticipated when he offered himself at the Last Supper, is afterwards
accepted by him from his Father's hands in his agony in the garden at
Gethsemani,434 making himself "obedient unto
death". Jesus prays: "My Father, if it be possible, let this
cup pass from me. . ."435 Thus he expresses the horror
that death represented for his human nature. Like ours, his human nature
is destined for eternal life; but unlike ours, it is perfectly exempt
from sin, the cause of death.436 Above all, his human nature
has been assumed by the divine person of the "Author of life",
the "Living One".437 By accepting in his human will
that the Father's will be done, he accepts his death as redemptive, for
"he himself bore our sins in his body on the tree."438
Christ's death is the unique and definitive sacrifice
613 Christ's death is both the Paschal sacrifice
that accomplishes the definitive redemption of men, through "the
Lamb of God, who takes away the sin of the world",439
and the sacrifice of the New Covenant, which restores man to
communion with God by reconciling him to God through the "blood of
the covenant, which was poured out for many for the forgiveness of
sins".440
614 This sacrifice of Christ is unique; it completes
and surpasses all other sacrifices.441 First, it is a gift
from God the Father himself, for the Father handed his Son over to
sinners in order to reconcile us with himself. At the same time it is
the offering of the Son of God made man, who in freedom and love offered
his life to his Father through the Holy Spirit in reparation for our
disobedience.442
Jesus substitutes his obedience for our disobedience
615 "For as by one man's disobedience many were
made sinners, so by one man's obedience many will be made
righteous."443 By his obedience unto death, Jesus
accomplished the substitution of the suffering Servant, who "makes
himself an offering for sin", when "he bore the sin
of many", and who "shall make many to be accounted
righteous", for "he shall bear their iniquities".444
Jesus atoned for our faults and made satisfaction for our sins to the
Father.445
Jesus consummates his sacrifice on the cross
616 It is love "to the end"446
that confers on Christ's sacrifice its value as redemption and
reparation, as atonement and satisfaction. He knew and loved us all when
he offered his life.447 Now "the love of Christ controls
us, because we are convinced that one has died for all; therefore all
have died."448 No man, not even the holiest, was ever
able to take on himself the sins of all men and offer himself as a
sacrifice for all. The existence in Christ of the divine person of the
Son, who at once surpasses and embraces all human persons, and
constitutes himself as the Head of all mankind, makes possible his
redemptive sacrifice for all.
617 The Council of Trent emphasizes the unique
character of Christ's sacrifice as "the source of eternal
salvation"449 and teaches that "his most holy
Passion on the wood of the cross merited justification for us."450
And the Church venerates his cross as she sings: "Hail, O Cross,
our only hope."451
Our participation in Christ's sacrifice
618 The cross is the unique sacrifice of Christ, the
"one mediator between God and men".452 But because
in his incarnate divine person he has in some way united himself to
every man, "the possibility of being made partners, in a way known
to God, in the paschal mystery" is offered to all men.453
He calls his disciples to "take up [their] cross and follow
[him]",454 for "Christ also suffered for [us],
leaving [us] an example so that [we] should follow in his steps."455
In fact Jesus desires to associate with his redeeming sacrifice those
who were to be its first beneficiaries.456 This is achieved
supremely in the case of his mother, who was associated more intimately
than any other person in the mystery of his redemptive suffering.457
-
Apart from the cross there is no other ladder by which we may get
to heaven.458
IN BRIEF
619 "Christ died for our sins in accordance
with the scriptures" (I Cor 15:3).
620 Our salvation flows from God's initiative of
love for us, because "he loved us and sent his Son to be the
expiation for our sins" (I Jn 4:10). "God was in Christ
reconciling the world to himself" (2 Cor 5:19).
621 Jesus freely offered himself for our salvation.
Beforehand, during the Last Supper, he both symbolized this offering and
made it really present: "This is my body which is given for
you" (Lk 22:19).
622 The redemption won by Christ consists in this,
that he came "to give his life as a ransom for many" (Mt 20:28),
that is, he "loved [his own] to the end" (Jn 13:1),
so that they might be "ransomed from the futile ways inherited from
[their] fathers" (I Pt 1:18).
623 By his loving obedience to the Father,
"unto death, even death on a cross" (Phil 2:8), Jesus
fulfils the atoning mission (cf. Is 53:10) of the suffering
Servant, who will "make many righteous; and he shall bear their
iniquities" (Is 53:11; cf. Rom 5:19).
Paragraph 3. Jesus Christ was Buried
624 "By the grace of God" Jesus tasted
death "for every one".459 In his plan of salvation,
God ordained that his Son should not only "die for our sins"460
but should also "taste death", experience the condition of
death, the separation of his soul from his body, between the time he
expired on the cross and the time he was raised from the dead. The state
of the dead Christ is the mystery of the tomb and the descent into hell.
It is the mystery of Holy Saturday, when Christ, lying in the tomb,461
reveals God's great sabbath rest462 after the fulfillment463
of man's salvation, which brings peace to the whole universe.464
Christ in the tomb in his body
625 Christ's stay in the tomb constitutes the real
link between his passible state before Easter and his glorious and risen
state today. The same person of the "Living One" can say,
"I died, and behold I am alive for evermore":465
-
God [the Son] did not impede death from separating his soul from
his body according to the necessary order of nature, but has
reunited them to one another in the Resurrection, so that he
himself might be, in his person, the meeting point for death and
life, by arresting in himself the decomposition of nature
produced by death and so becoming the source of reunion for the
separated parts.466
626 Since the "Author of life" who was
killed467 is the same "living one [who has] risen",468
the divine person of the Son of God necessarily continued to possess his
human soul and body, separated from each other by death:
-
By the fact that at Christ's death his soul was separated from his
flesh, his one person is not itself divided into two persons; for
the human body and soul of Christ have existed in the same way from
the beginning of his earthly existence, in the divine person of the
Word; and in death, although separated from each other, both
remained with one and the same person of the Word.469
"You will not let your Holy One see corruption"
627 Christ's death was a real death in that it put
an end to his earthly human existence. But because of the union which
the person of the Son retained with his body, his was not a mortal
corpse like others, for "it was not possible for death to hold
him"469a and therefore "divine power
preserved Christ's body from corruption."470 Both of these statements
can be said of Christ: "He was cut off out of the land of the
living",471 and "My flesh will dwell in hope. For
you will not abandon my soul to Hades, nor let your Holy One see
corruption."472 Jesus' resurrection "on the third
day" was the sign of this, also because bodily decay was held to
begin on the fourth day after death.473
"Buried with Christ. . ."
628 Baptism, the original and full sign of which is
immersion, efficaciously signifies the descent into the tomb by the
Christian who dies to sin with Christ in order to live a new life.
"We were buried therefore with him by baptism into death, so that
as Christ was raised from the dead by the glory of the Father, we too
might walk in newness of life."474
IN BRIEF
629 To the benefit of every man, Jesus Christ tasted
death (cf. Heb 2:9). It is truly the Son of God made man who
died and was buried.
630 During Christ's period in the tomb, his divine
person continued to assume both his soul and his body, although they
were separated from each other by death. For this reason the dead
Christ's body "saw no corruption" (Acts 13:37).
ARTICLE 5
"HE DESCENDED INTO HELL. ON THE THIRD DAY HE ROSE AGAIN"
631 Jesus "descended into the lower parts of
the earth. He who descended is he who also ascended far above all the
heavens."475 The Apostles' Creed confesses in the same
article Christ's descent into hell and his Resurrection from the dead on
the third day, because in his Passover it was precisely out of the
depths of death that he made life spring forth:
-
Christ, that Morning Star, who came back from the dead, and shed
his peaceful light on all mankind, your Son who lives and reigns for
ever and ever. Amen.476
Paragraph 1. Christ Descended into Hell
632 The frequent New Testament affirmations that
Jesus was "raised from the dead" presuppose that the crucified
one sojourned in the realm of the dead prior to his resurrection.477
This was the first meaning given in the apostolic preaching to Christ's
descent into hell: that Jesus, like all men, experienced death and in
his soul joined the others in the realm of the dead. But he descended
there as Savior, proclaiming the Good News to the spirits imprisoned
there.478
633 Scripture calls the abode of the dead, to which
the dead Christ went down, "hell" - Sheol in Hebrew
or Hades in Greek - because those who are there are deprived of
the vision of God.479 Such is the case for all the dead,
whether evil or righteous, while they await the Redeemer: which does not
mean that their lot is identical, as Jesus shows through the parable of
the poor man Lazarus who was received into "Abraham's bosom":480
"It is precisely these holy souls, who awaited their Savior in
Abraham's bosom, whom Christ the Lord delivered when he descended into
hell."481 Jesus did not descend into hell to deliver the
damned, nor to destroy the hell of damnation, but to free the just who
had gone before him.482
634 "The gospel was preached even to the
dead."483 The descent into hell brings the Gospel
message of salvation to complete fulfilment. This is the last phase of
Jesus' messianic mission, a phase which is condensed in time but vast in
its real significance: the spread of Christ's redemptive work to all men
of all times and all places, for all who are saved have been made
sharers in the redemption.
635 Christ went down into the depths of death so
that "the dead will hear the voice of the Son of God, and those who
hear will live."484 Jesus, "the Author of
life", by dying destroyed "him who has the power of death,
that is, the devil, and [delivered] all those who through fear of death
were subject to lifelong bondage."485 Henceforth the
risen Christ holds "the keys of Death and Hades", so that
"at the name of Jesus every knee should bow, in heaven and on earth
and under the earth."486
-
Today a great silence reigns on earth, a great silence and a great
stillness. A great silence because the King is asleep. The earth
trembled and is still because God has fallen asleep in the flesh and
he has raised up all who have slept ever since the world began. . .
He has gone to search for Adam, our first father, as for a lost
sheep. Greatly desiring to visit those who live in darkness and in
the shadow of death, he has gone to free from sorrow Adam in his
bonds and Eve, captive with him - He who is both their God and the
son of Eve. . . "I am your God, who for your sake have become
your son. . . I order you, O sleeper, to awake. I did not create you
to be a prisoner in hell. Rise from the dead, for I am the life of
the dead."487
IN BRIEF
636 By the expression "He descended into
hell", the Apostles' Creed confesses that Jesus did really die and
through his death for us conquered death and the devil "who has the
power of death" (Heb 2:14).
637 In his human soul united to his divine person,
the dead Christ went down to the realm of the dead. He opened heaven's
gates for the just who had gone before him.
Paragraph 2. On the Third Day He Rose from the Dead
638 "We bring you the good news that what God
promised to the fathers, this day he has fulfilled to us their children
by raising Jesus."488 The Resurrection of Jesus is the
crowning truth of our faith in Christ, a faith believed and lived as the
central truth by the first Christian community; handed on as fundamental
by Tradition; established by the documents of the New Testament; and
preached as an essential part of the Paschal mystery along with the
cross:
-
Christ is risen from the dead!
Dying, he conquered death;
To the dead, he has given life.489
I. THE HISTORICAL AND TRANSCENDENT EVENT
639 The mystery of Christ's resurrection is a real
event, with manifestations that were historically verified, as the New
Testament bears witness. In about A.D. 56 St. Paul could already write
to the Corinthians: "I delivered to you as of first importance what
I also received, that Christ died for our sins in accordance with the
scriptures, and that he was buried, that he was raised on the third day
in accordance with the scriptures, and that he appeared to Cephas, then
to the Twelve. . ."490 The Apostle speaks here of the
living tradition of the Resurrection which he had learned after his
conversion at the gates of Damascus.491
The empty tomb
640 "Why do you seek the living among the dead?
He is not here, but has risen."492 The first element we
encounter in the framework of the Easter events is the empty tomb. In
itself it is not a direct proof of Resurrection; the absence of Christ's
body from the tomb could be explained otherwise.493
Nonetheless the empty tomb was still an essential sign for all. Its
discovery by the disciples was the first step toward recognizing the
very fact of the Resurrection. This was the case, first with the holy
women, and then with Peter.494 The disciple "whom Jesus
loved" affirmed that when he entered the empty tomb and discovered
"the linen cloths lying there", "he saw and
believed".495 This suggests that he realized from the
empty tomb's condition that the absence of Jesus' body could not have
been of human doing and that Jesus had not simply returned to earthly
life as had been the case with Lazarus.496
The appearances of the Risen One
641 Mary Magdalene and the holy women who came to
finish anointing the body of Jesus, which had been buried in haste
because the Sabbath began on the evening of Good Friday, were the first
to encounter the Risen One.497 Thus the women were the first
messengers of Christ's Resurrection for the apostles themselves.498
They were the next to whom Jesus appears: first Peter, then the Twelve.
Peter had been called to strengthen the faith of his brothers,499
and so sees the Risen One before them; it is on the basis of his
testimony that the community exclaims: "The Lord has risen indeed,
and has appeared to Simon!"500
642 Everything that happened during those Paschal
days involves each of the apostles - and Peter in particular - in the
building of the new era begun on Easter morning. As witnesses of the
Risen One, they remain the foundation stones of his Church. The faith of
the first community of believers is based on the witness of concrete men
known to the Christians and for the most part still living among them.
Peter and the Twelve are the primary "witnesses to his
Resurrection", but they are not the only ones - Paul speaks clearly
of more than five hundred persons to whom Jesus appeared on a single
occasion and also of James and of all the apostles.501
643 Given all these testimonies, Christ's
Resurrection cannot be interpreted as something outside the physical
order, and it is impossible not to acknowledge it as an historical fact.
It is clear from the facts that the disciples' faith was drastically put
to the test by their master's Passion and death on the cross, which he
had foretold.502 The shock provoked by the Passion was so
great that at least some of the disciples did not at once believe in the
news of the Resurrection. Far from showing us a community seized by a
mystical exaltation, the Gospels present us with disciples demoralized
("looking sad"503) and frightened. For they had not
believed the holy women returning from the tomb and had regarded their
words as an "idle tale".504 When Jesus reveals
himself to the Eleven on Easter evening, "he upbraided them for
their unbelief and hardness of heart, because they had not believed
those who saw him after he had risen."505
644 Even when faced with the reality of the risen
Jesus the disciples are still doubtful, so impossible did the thing
seem: they thought they were seeing a ghost. "In their joy they
were still disbelieving and still wondering."506 Thomas
will also experience the test of doubt and St. Matthew relates that
during the risen Lord's last appearance in Galilee "some
doubted."507 Therefore the hypothesis that the
Resurrection was produced by the apostles' faith (or credulity) will not
hold up. On the contrary their faith in the Resurrection was born, under
the action of divine grace, from their direct experience of the reality
of the risen Jesus.
The condition of Christ's risen humanity
645 By means of touch and the sharing of a meal, the
risen Jesus establishes direct contact with his disciples. He invites
them in this way to recognize that he is not a ghost and above all to
verify that the risen body in which he appears to them is the same body
that had been tortured and crucified, for it still bears the traces of
his Passion.508 Yet at the same time this authentic, real
body possesses the new properties of a glorious body: not limited by
space and time but able to be present how and when he wills; for
Christ's humanity can no longer be confined to earth, and belongs
henceforth only to the Father's divine realm.509 For this
reason too the risen Jesus enjoys the sovereign freedom of appearing as
he wishes: in the guise of a gardener or in other forms familiar to his
disciples, precisely to awaken their faith.510
646 Christ's Resurrection was not a return to
earthly life, as was the case with the raisings from the dead that he
had performed before Easter: Jairus' daughter, the young man of Naim,
Lazarus. These actions were miraculous events, but the persons
miraculously raised returned by Jesus' power to ordinary earthly life.
At some particular moment they would die again. Christ's Resurrection is
essentially different. In his risen body he passes from the state of
death to another life beyond time and space. At Jesus' Resurrection his
body is filled with the power of the Holy Spirit: he shares the divine
life in his glorious state, so that St. Paul can say that Christ is
"the man of heaven".511
The Resurrection as transcendent event
647 O truly blessed Night, sings the Exultet of the
Easter Vigil, which alone deserved to know the time and the hour when
Christ rose from the realm of the dead!512 But no one was an
eyewitness to Christ's Resurrection and no evangelist describes it. No
one can say how it came about physically. Still less was its innermost
essence, his passing over to another life, perceptible to the senses.
Although the Resurrection was an historical event that could be verified
by the sign of the empty tomb and by the reality of the apostles'
encounters with the risen Christ, still it remains at the very heart of
the mystery of faith as something that transcends and surpasses history.
This is why the risen Christ does not reveal himself to the world, but
to his disciples, "to those who came up with him from Galilee to
Jerusalem, who are now his witnesses to the people."513
II. THE RESURRECTION - A WORK OF THE HOLY TRINITY
648 Christ's Resurrection is an object of faith in
that it is a transcendent intervention of God himself in creation and
history. In it the three divine persons act together as one, and
manifest their own proper characteristics. The Father's power
"raised up" Christ his Son and by doing so perfectly
introduced his Son's humanity, including his body, into the Trinity.
Jesus is conclusively revealed as "Son of God in power according to
the Spirit of holiness by his Resurrection from the dead".514
St. Paul insists on the manifestation of God's power515
through the working of the Spirit who gave life to Jesus' dead humanity
and called it to the glorious state of Lordship.
649 As for the Son, he effects his own Resurrection
by virtue of his divine power. Jesus announces that the Son of man will
have to suffer much, die, and then rise.516 Elsewhere he
affirms explicitly: "I lay down my life, that I may take it again.
. . I have power to lay it down, and I have power to take it
again."517 "We believe that Jesus died and rose
again."518
650 The Fathers contemplate the Resurrection from
the perspective of the divine person of Christ who remained united to
his soul and body, even when these were separated from each other by
death: "By the unity of the divine nature, which remains present in
each of the two components of man, these are reunited. For as death is
produced by the separation of the human components, so Resurrection is
achieved by the union of the two."519
III. THE MEANING AND SAVING SIGNIFICANCE OF THE RESURRECTION
651 "If Christ has not been raised, then our
preaching is in vain and your faith is in vain."520 The
Resurrection above all constitutes the confirmation of all Christ's
works and teachings. All truths, even those most inaccessible to human
reason, find their justification if Christ by his Resurrection has given
the definitive proof of his divine authority, which he had promised.
652 Christ's Resurrection is the fulfillment of the
promises both of the Old Testament and of Jesus himself during his
earthly life.521 The phrase "in accordance with the
Scriptures"522 indicates that Christ's Resurrection
fulfilled these predictions.
653 The truth of Jesus' divinity is confirmed by his
Resurrection. He had said: "When you have lifted up the Son of man,
then you will know that I am he."523 The Resurrection of
the crucified one shows that he was truly "I AM", the Son of
God and God himself. So St. Paul could declare to the Jews: "What
God promised to the fathers, this he has fulfilled to us their children
by raising Jesus; as also it is written in the second psalm, 'You are my
Son, today I have begotten you.'"524 Christ's
Resurrection is closely linked to the Incarnation of God's Son, and is
its fulfillment in accordance with God's eternal plan.
654 The Paschal mystery has two aspects: by his
death, Christ liberates us from sin; by his Resurrection, he opens for
us the way to a new life. This new life is above all justification that
reinstates us in God's grace, "so that as Christ was raised from
the dead by the glory of the Father, we too might walk in newness of
life."525 Justification consists in both victory over
the death caused by sin and a new participation in grace.526
It brings about filial adoption so that men become Christ's brethren, as
Jesus himself called his disciples after his Resurrection: "Go and
tell my brethren."527 We are brethren not by nature, but
by the gift of grace, because that adoptive filiation gains us a real
share in the life of the only Son, which was fully revealed in his
Resurrection.
655 Finally, Christ's Resurrection - and the risen
Christ himself is the principle and source of our future resurrection:
"Christ has been raised from the dead, the first fruits of those
who have fallen asleep. . . For as in Adam all die, so also in Christ
shall all be made alive."528 The risen Christ lives in
the hearts of his faithful while they await that fulfillment . In
Christ, Christians "have tasted. . . the powers of the age to
come"529 and their lives are swept up by Christ into the
heart of divine life, so that they may "live no longer for
themselves but for him who for their sake died and was raised."530
IN BRIEF
656 Faith in the Resurrection has as its object an
event which as historically attested to by the disciples, who really
encountered the Risen One. At the same time, this event is mysteriously
transcendent insofar as it is the entry of Christ's humanity into the
glory of God.
657 The empty tomb and the linen cloths lying there
signify in themselves that by God's power Christ's body had escaped the
bonds of death and corruption. They prepared the disciples to encounter
the Risen Lord.
658 Christ, "the first-born from the dead"
(Col 1:18), is the principle of our own resurrection, even now
by the justification of our souls (cf. Rom 6:4), and one day by
the new life he will impart to our bodies (cf.: Rom 8:11).
ARTICLE 6
"HE ASCENDED INTO HEAVEN AND IS SEATED AT THE RIGHT HAND OF THE
FATHER"
659 "So then the Lord Jesus, after he had
spoken to them, was taken up into heaven, and sat down at the right hand
of God."531 Christ's body was glorified at the moment of
his Resurrection, as proved by the new and supernatural properties it
subsequently and permanently enjoys.532 But during the forty
days when he eats and drinks familiarly with his disciples and teaches
them about the kingdom, his glory remains veiled under the appearance of
ordinary humanity.533 Jesus' final apparition ends with the
irreversible entry of his humanity into divine glory, symbolized by the
cloud and by heaven, where he is seated from that time forward at God's
right hand.534 Only in a wholly exceptional and unique way
would Jesus show himself to Paul "as to one untimely born", in
a last apparition that established him as an apostle.535
660 The veiled character of the glory of the Risen
One during this time is intimated in his mysterious words to Mary
Magdalene: "I have not yet ascended to the Father; but go to my
brethren and say to them, I am ascending to my Father and your Father,
to my God and your God."536 This indicates a difference
in manifestation between the glory of the risen Christ and that of the
Christ exalted to the Father's right hand, a transition marked by the
historical and transcendent event of the Ascension.
661 This final stage stays closely linked to the
first, that is, to his descent from heaven in the Incarnation. Only the
one who "came from the Father" can return to the Father:
Christ Jesus.537 "No one has ascended into heaven but he
who descended from heaven, the Son of man."538 Left to
its own natural powers humanity does not have access to the
"Father's house", to God's life and happiness.539
Only Christ can open to man such access that we, his members, might have
confidence that we too shall go where he, our Head and our Source, has
preceded us.540
662 "And I, when I am lifted up from the earth,
will draw all men to myself."541 The lifting up of Jesus
on the cross signifies and announces his lifting up by his Ascension
into heaven, and indeed begins it. Jesus Christ, the one priest of the
new and eternal Covenant, "entered, not into a sanctuary made by
human hands. . . but into heaven itself, now to appear in the presence
of God on our behalf."542 There Christ permanently
exercises his priesthood, for he "always lives to make
intercession" for "those who draw near to God through
him".543 As "high priest of the good things to
come" he is the center and the principal actor of the liturgy that
honors the Father in heaven.544
663 Henceforth Christ is seated at the right
hand of the Father: "By 'the Father's right hand' we
understand the glory and honor of divinity, where he who exists as Son
of God before all ages, indeed as God, of one being with the Father, is
seated bodily after he became incarnate and his flesh was
glorified."545
664 Being seated at the Father's right hand
signifies the inauguration of the Messiah's kingdom, the fulfillment of
the prophet Daniel's vision concerning the Son of man: "To him was
given dominion and glory and kingdom, that all peoples, nations, and
languages should serve him; his dominion is an everlasting dominion,
which shall not pass away, and his kingdom one that shall not be
destroyed."546 After this event the apostles became
witnesses of the "kingdom [that] will have no end".547
IN BRIEF
665 Christ's Ascension marks the definitive entrance
of Jesus' humanity into God's heavenly domain, whence he will come again
(cf. Acts 1:11); this humanity in the meantime hides him from
the eyes of men (cf. Col 3:3).
666 Jesus Christ, the head of the Church, precedes
us into the Father's glorious kingdom so that we, the members of his
Body, may live in the hope of one day being with him for ever.
667 Jesus Christ, having entered the sanctuary of
heaven once and for all, intercedes constantly for us as the mediator
who assures us of the permanent outpouring of the Holy Spirit.
ARTICLE 7
"FROM THENCE HE WILL COME AGAIN TO JUDGE THE LIVING AND THE
DEAD"
I. HE WILL COME AGAIN IN GLORY
Christ already reigns through the Church. . .
668 "Christ died and lived again, that he might
be Lord both of the dead and of the living."548 Christ's
Ascension into heaven signifies his participation, in his humanity, in
God's power and authority. Jesus Christ is Lord: he possesses all power
in heaven and on earth. He is "far above all rule and authority and
power and dominion", for the Father "has put all things under
his feet."549 Christ is Lord of the cosmos and of
history. In him human history and indeed all creation are "set
forth" and transcendently fulfilled.550
669 As Lord, Christ is also head of the Church,
which is his Body.551 Taken up to heaven and glorified after
he had thus fully accomplished his mission, Christ dwells on earth in
his Church. The redemption is the source of the authority that Christ,
by virtue of the Holy Spirit, exercises over the Church. "The
kingdom of Christ [is] already present in mystery", "on earth,
the seed and the beginning of the kingdom".552
670 Since the Ascension God's plan has entered into
its fulfillment. We are already at "the last hour".553
"Already the final age of the world is with us, and the renewal of
the world is irrevocably under way; it is even now anticipated in a
certain real way, for the Church on earth is endowed already with a
sanctity that is real but imperfect."554 Christ's
kingdom already manifests its presence through the miraculous signs that
attend its proclamation by the Church.555
. . .until all things are subjected to him
671 Though already present in his Church, Christ's
reign is nevertheless yet to be fulfilled "with power and great
glory" by the King's return to earth.556 This reign is
still under attack by the evil powers, even though they have been
defeated definitively by Christ's Passover.557 Until
everything is subject to him, "until there be realized new heavens
and a new earth in which justice dwells, the pilgrim Church, in her
sacraments and institutions, which belong to this present age, carries
the mark of this world which will pass, and she herself takes her place
among the creatures which groan and travail yet and await the revelation
of the sons of God."558 That is why Christians pray,
above all in the Eucharist, to hasten Christ's return by saying to him:559
Marana tha! "Our Lord, come!"560
672 Before his Ascension Christ affirmed that the
hour had not yet come for the glorious establishment of the messianic
kingdom awaited by Israel561 which, according to the
prophets, was to bring all men the definitive order of justice, love and
peace.562 According to the Lord, the present time is the time
of the Spirit and of witness, but also a time still marked by
"distress" and the trial of evil which does not spare the
Church563 and ushers in the struggles of the last days. It is
a time of waiting and watching.564
The glorious advent of Christ, the hope of Israel
673 Since the Ascension Christ's coming in glory has
been imminent,565 even though "it is not for you to know
times or seasons which the Father has fixed by his own authority."566.
This eschatological coming could be accomplished at any moment, even if
both it and the final trial that will precede it are
"delayed".567
674 The glorious Messiah's coming is suspended at
every moment of history until his recognition by "all Israel",
for "a hardening has come upon part of Israel" in their
"unbelief" toward Jesus.568 St. Peter says to the
Jews of Jerusalem after Pentecost: "Repent therefore, and turn
again, that your sins may be blotted out, that times of refreshing may
come from the presence of the Lord, and that he may send the Christ
appointed for you, Jesus, whom heaven must receive until the time for
establishing all that God spoke by the mouth of his holy prophets from
of old."569 St. Paul echoes him: "For if their
rejection means the reconciliation of the world, what will their
acceptance mean but life from the dead?"570 The
"full inclusion" of the Jews in the Messiah's salvation, in
the wake of "the full number of the Gentiles",571
will enable the People of God to achieve "the measure of the
stature of the fullness of Christ", in which "God may be all
in all".572
The Church's ultimate trial
675 Before Christ's second coming the Church must
pass through a final trial that will shake the faith of many believers.573
The persecution that accompanies her pilgrimage on earth574
will unveil the "mystery of iniquity" in the form of a
religious deception offering men an apparent solution to their problems
at the price of apostasy from the truth. The supreme religious deception
is that of the Antichrist, a pseudo-messianism by which man glorifies
himself in place of God and of his Messiah come in the flesh.575
676 The Antichrist's deception already begins to
take shape in the world every time the claim is made to realize within
history that messianic hope which can only be realized beyond history
through the eschatological judgment. The Church has rejected even
modified forms of this falsification of the kingdom to come under the
name of millenarianism,576 especially the "intrinsically
perverse" political form of a secular messianism.577
677 The Church will enter the glory of the kingdom
only through this final Passover, when she will follow her Lord in his
death and Resurrection.578 The kingdom will be fulfilled,
then, not by a historic triumph of the Church through a progressive
ascendancy, but only by God's victory over the final unleashing of evil,
which will cause his Bride to come down from heaven.579 God's
triumph over the revolt of evil will take the form of the Last Judgment
after the final cosmic upheaval of this passing world.580
II. TO JUDGE THE LIVING AND THE DEAD
678 Following in the steps of the prophets and John
the Baptist, Jesus announced the judgment of the Last Day in his
preaching.581 Then will the conduct of each one and the
secrets of hearts be brought to light.582 Then will the
culpable unbelief that counted the offer of God's grace as nothing be
condemned.583 Our attitude to our neighbor will disclose
acceptance or refusal of grace and divine love.584 On the
Last Day Jesus will say: "Truly I say to you, as you did it to one
of the least of these my brethren, you did it to me."585
679 Christ is Lord of eternal life. Full right to
pass definitive judgment on the works and hearts of men belongs to him
as redeemer of the world. He "acquired" this right by his
cross. The Father has given "all judgment to the Son".586
Yet the Son did not come to judge, but to save and to give the life he
has in himself.587 By rejecting grace in this life, one
already judges oneself, receives according to one's works, and can even
condemn oneself for all eternity by rejecting the Spirit of love.588
IN BRIEF
680 Christ the Lord already reigns through the
Church, but all the things of this world are not yet subjected to him.
The triumph of Christ's kingdom will not come about without one last
assault by the powers of evil.
681 On Judgment Day at the end of the world, Christ
will come in glory to achieve the definitive triumph of good over evil
which, like the wheat and the tares, have grown up together in the
course of history.
682 When he comes at the end of time to judge the
living and the dead, the glorious Christ will reveal the secret
disposition of hearts and will render to each man according to his
works, and according to his acceptance or refusal of grace.
CHAPTER THREE
I BELIEVE IN THE HOLY SPIRIT
683 "No one can say 'Jesus is Lord' except by
the Holy Spirit."1 "God has sent the Spirit of his
Son into our hearts, crying, 'Abba! Father!"'2
This knowledge of faith is possible only in the Holy Spirit: to be in
touch with Christ, we must first have been touched by the Holy Spirit.
He comes to meet us and kindles faith in us. By virtue of our Baptism,
the first sacrament of the faith, the Holy Spirit in the Church
communicates to us, intimately and personally, the life that originates
in the Father and is offered to us in the Son.
-
Baptism gives us the grace of new birth in God the Father, through
his Son, in the Holy Spirit. For those who bear God's Spirit are led
to the Word, that is, to the Son, and the Son presents them to the
Father, and the Father confers incorruptibility on them. And it is
impossible to see God's Son without the Spirit, and no one can
approach the Father without the Son, for the knowledge of the Father
is the Son, and the knowledge of God's Son is obtained through the
Holy Spirit.3
684 Through his grace, the Holy Spirit is the first
to awaken faith in us and to communicate to us the new life, which is to
"know the Father and the one whom he has sent, Jesus Christ."4
But the Spirit is the last of the persons of the Holy Trinity to be
revealed. St. Gregory of Nazianzus, the Theologian, explains this
progression in terms of the pedagogy of divine
"condescension":
-
The Old Testament proclaimed the Father clearly, but the Son more
obscurely. The New Testament revealed the Son and gave us a glimpse
of the divinity of the Spirit. Now the Spirit dwells among us and
grants us a clearer vision of himself. It was not prudent, when the
divinity of the Father had not yet been confessed, to proclaim the
Son openly and, when the divinity of the Son was not yet admitted,
to add the Holy Spirit as an extra burden, to speak somewhat
daringly.... By advancing and progressing "from glory to
glory," the light of the Trinity will shine in ever more
brilliant rays.5
685 To believe in the Holy Spirit is to profess that
the Holy Spirit is one of the persons of the Holy Trinity,
consubstantial with the Father and the Son: "with the Father and
the Son he is worshipped and glorified."6 For this
reason, the divine mystery of the Holy Spirit was already treated in the
context of Trinitarian "theology." Here, however, we have to
do with the Holy Spirit only in the divine "economy."
686 The Holy Spirit is at work with the Father and
the Son from the beginning to the completion of the plan for our
salvation. But in these "end times," ushered in by the Son's
redeeming Incarnation, the Spirit is revealed and given, recognized and
welcomed as a person. Now can this divine plan, accomplished in Christ,
the firstborn and head of the new creation, be embodied in mankind by
the outpouring of the Spirit: as the Church, the communion of saints,
the forgiveness of sins, the resurrection of the body, and the life
everlasting.
ARTICLE 8
"I BELIEVE IN THE HOLY SPIRIT"
687 "No one comprehends the thoughts of God
except the Spirit of God."7 Now God's Spirit, who
reveals God, makes known to us Christ, his Word, his living Utterance,
but the Spirit does not speak of himself. The Spirit who "has
spoken through the prophets" makes us hear the Father's Word, but
we do not hear the Spirit himself. We know him only in the movement by
which he reveals the Word to us and disposes us to welcome him in faith.
The Spirit of truth who "unveils" Christ to us "will not
speak on his own."8 Such properly divine self-effacement
explains why "the world cannot receive [him], because it neither
sees him nor knows him," while those who believe in Christ know the
Spirit because he dwells with them.9
688 The Church, a communion living in the faith of
the apostles which she transmits, is the place where we know the Holy
Spirit:
- in the Scriptures he inspired;
- in the Tradition, to which the Church Fathers are always timely
witnesses;
- in the Church's Magisterium, which he assists;
- in the sacramental liturgy, through its words and symbols, in which
the Holy Spirit puts us into communion with Christ;
- in prayer, wherein he intercedes for us;
- in the charisms and ministries by which the Church is built up;
- in the signs of apostolic and missionary life;
- in the witness of saints through whom he manifests his holiness and
continues the work of salvation.
I. THE JOINT MISSION OF THE SON AND THE SPIRIT
689 The One whom the Father has sent into our
hearts, the Spirit of his Son, is truly God.10 Consubstantial
with the Father and the Son, the Spirit is inseparable from them, in
both the inner life of the Trinity and his gift of love for the world.
In adoring the Holy Trinity, life-giving, consubstantial, and
indivisible, the Church's faith also professes the distinction of
persons. When the Father sends his Word, he always sends his Breath. In
their joint mission, the Son and the Holy Spirit are distinct but
inseparable. To be sure, it is Christ who is seen, the visible image of
the invisible God, but it is the Spirit who reveals him.
690 Jesus is Christ, "anointed," because
the Spirit is his anointing, and everything that occurs from the
Incarnation on derives from this fullness.11 When Christ is
finally glorified,12 he can in turn send the Spirit from his
place with the Father to those who believe in him: he communicates to
them his glory,13 that is, the Holy Spirit who glorifies him.14
From that time on, this joint mission will be manifested in the children
adopted by the Father in the Body of his Son: the mission of the Spirit
of adoption is to unite them to Christ and make them live in him:
-
The notion of anointing suggests . . . that there is no distance
between the Son and the Spirit. Indeed, just as between the surface
of the body and the anointing with oil neither reason nor sensation
recognizes any intermediary, so the contact of the Son with the
Spirit is immediate, so that anyone who would make contact with the
Son by faith must first encounter the oil by contact. In fact there
is no part that is not covered by the Holy Spirit. That is why the
confession of the Son's Lordship is made in the Holy Spirit by those
who receive him, the Spirit coming from all sides to those who
approach the Son in faith.15
II. THE NAME, TITLES, AND SYMBOLS OF THE HOLY SPIRIT
The proper name of the Holy Spirit
691 "Holy Spirit" is the proper name of
the one whom we adore and glorify with the Father and the Son. The
Church has received this name from the Lord and professes it in the
Baptism of her new children.16
-
The term "Spirit" translates the Hebrew word ruah,
which, in its primary sense, means breath, air, wind. Jesus indeed
uses the sensory image of the wind to suggest to Nicodemus the
transcendent newness of him who is personally God's breath, the
divine Spirit.17 On the other hand, "Spirit"
and "Holy" are divine attributes common to the three
divine persons. By joining the two terms, Scripture, liturgy, and
theological language designate the inexpressible person of the Holy
Spirit, without any possible equivocation with other uses of the
terms "spirit" and "holy."
Titles of the Holy Spirit
692 When he proclaims and promises the coming of the
Holy Spirit, Jesus calls him the "Paraclete," literally,
"he who is called to one's side," ad-vocatus.18
"Paraclete" is commonly translated by "consoler,"
and Jesus is the first consoler.19 The Lord also called the
Holy Spirit "the Spirit of truth."20
693 Besides the proper name of "Holy
Spirit," which is most frequently used in the Acts of the
Apostles and in the Epistles, we also find in St. Paul the titles:
the Spirit of the promise,21 the Spirit of adoption,22
the Spirit of Christ,23 the Spirit of the Lord,24
and the Spirit of God25 - and, in St. Peter, the Spirit of
glory.26
Symbols of the Holy Spirit
694 Water. The symbolism of water signifies
the Holy Spirit's action in Baptism, since after the invocation of the
Holy Spirit it becomes the efficacious sacramental sign of new birth:
just as the gestation of our first birth took place in water, so the
water of Baptism truly signifies that our birth into the divine life
is given to us in the Holy Spirit. As "by one Spirit we were all
baptized," so we are also "made to drink of one
Spirit."27 Thus the Spirit is also personally the
living water welling up from Christ crucified28 as its
source and welling up in us to eternal life.29
695 Anointing. The symbolism of anointing
with oil also signifies the Holy Spirit,30 to the point of
becoming a synonym for the Holy Spirit. In Christian initiation,
anointing is the sacramental sign of Confirmation, called
"chrismation" in the Churches of the East. Its full force
can be grasped only in relation to the primary anointing accomplished
by the Holy Spirit, that of Jesus. Christ (in Hebrew "messiah")
means the one "anointed" by God's Spirit. There were several
anointed ones of the Lord in the Old Covenant, pre-eminently King
David.31 But Jesus is God's Anointed in a unique way: the
humanity the Son assumed was entirely anointed by the Holy Spirit. The
Holy Spirit established him as "Christ."32 The
Virgin Mary conceived Christ by the Holy Spirit who, through the
angel, proclaimed him the Christ at his birth, and prompted Simeon to
come to the temple to see the Christ of the Lord.33 The
Spirit filled Christ and the power of the Spirit went out from him in
his acts of healing and of saving.34 Finally, it was the
Spirit who raised Jesus from the dead.35 Now, fully
established as "Christ" in his humanity victorious over
death, Jesus pours out the Holy Spirit abundantly until "the
saints" constitute - in their union with the humanity of the Son
of God - that perfect man "to the measure of the stature of the
fullness of Christ":36 "the whole Christ,"
in St. Augustine's expression.
696 Fire. While water signifies birth and
the fruitfulness of life given in the Holy Spirit, fire symbolizes the
transforming energy of the Holy Spirit's actions. The prayer of the
prophet Elijah, who "arose like fire" and whose "word
burned like a torch," brought down fire from heaven on the
sacrifice on Mount Carmel.37 This event was a
"figure" of the fire of the Holy Spirit, who transforms what
he touches. John the Baptist, who goes "before [the Lord] in the
spirit and power of Elijah," proclaims Christ as the one who
"will baptize you with the Holy Spirit and with fire."38
Jesus will say of the Spirit: "I came to cast fire upon the
earth; and would that it were already kindled!"39 In
the form of tongues "as of fire," the Holy Spirit rests on
the disciples on the morning of Pentecost and fills them with himself40
The spiritual tradition has retained this symbolism of fire as one of
the most expressive images of the Holy Spirit's actions.41
"Do not quench the Spirit."42
697 Cloud and light. These two images
occur together in the manifestations of the Holy Spirit. In the
theophanies of the Old Testament, the cloud, now obscure, now
luminous, reveals the living and saving God, while veiling the
transcendence of his glory - with Moses on Mount Sinai,43
at the tent of meeting,44 and during the wandering in the
desert,45 and with Solomon at the dedication of the Temple.46
In the Holy Spirit, Christ fulfills these figures. The Spirit comes
upon the Virgin Mary and "overshadows" her, so that she
might conceive and give birth to Jesus.47 On the mountain
of Transfiguration, the Spirit in the "cloud came and
overshadowed" Jesus, Moses and Elijah, Peter, James and John, and
"a voice came out of the cloud, saying, 'This is my Son, my
Chosen; listen to him!'"48 Finally, the cloud took
Jesus out of the sight of the disciples on the day of his ascension
and will reveal him as Son of man in glory on the day of his final
coming.49
698 The seal is a symbol close to that of
anointing. "The Father has set his seal" on Christ and also
seals us in him.50 Because this seal indicates the
indelible effect of the anointing with the Holy Spirit in the
sacraments of Baptism, Confirmation, and Holy Orders, the image of the
seal (sphragis) has been used in some theological traditions
to express the indelible "character" imprinted by these
three unrepeatable sacraments.
699 The hand. Jesus heals the sick and
blesses little children by laying hands on them.51 In his
name the apostles will do the same.52 Even more pointedly,
it is by the Apostles' imposition of hands that the Holy Spirit is
given.53 The Letter to the Hebrews lists the imposition of
hands among the "fundamental elements" of its teaching.54
The Church has kept this sign of the all-powerful outpouring of the
Holy Spirit in its sacramental epicleses.
700 The finger. "It is by the finger
of God that [Jesus] cast out demons."55 If God's law
was written on tablets of stone "by the finger of God," then
the "letter from Christ" entrusted to the care of the
apostles, is written "with the Spirit of the living God, not on
tablets of stone, but on tablets of human hearts."56
The hymn Veni Creator Spiritus invokes the Holy Spirit as the
"finger of the Father's right hand."57
701 The dove. At the end of the flood,
whose symbolism refers to Baptism, a dove released by Noah returns
with a fresh olive-tree branch in its beak as a sign that the earth
was again habitable.58 When Christ comes up from the water
of his baptism, the Holy Spirit, in the form of a dove, comes down
upon him and remains with him.59 The Spirit comes down and
remains in the purified hearts of the baptized. In certain churches,
the Eucharist is reserved in a metal receptacle in the form of a dove
(columbarium) suspended above the altar. Christian
iconography traditionally uses a dove to suggest the Spirit.
III. GOD'S SPIRIT AND WORD IN THE TIME OF THE PROMISES
702 From the beginning until "the fullness of
time,"60 the joint mission of the Father's Word and
Spirit remains hidden, but it is at work. God's Spirit prepares
for the time of the Messiah. Neither is fully revealed but both are
already promised, to be watched for and welcomed at their manifestation.
So, for this reason, when the Church reads the Old Testament, she
searches there for what the Spirit, "who has spoken through the
prophets," wants to tell us about Christ.61
By "prophets" the faith of the Church here understands all
whom the Holy Spirit inspired in the composition of the sacred books,
both of the Old and the New Testaments. Jewish tradition distinguishes
first the Law (the five first books or Pentateuch), then the Prophets
(our historical and prophetic books) and finally the Writings
(especially the wisdom literature, in particular the Psalms).62
In creation
703 The Word of God and his Breath are at the origin
of the being and life of every creature:63
-
It belongs to the Holy Spirit to rule, sanctify, and animate
creation, for he is God, consubstantial with the Father and the Son.
. . . Power over life pertains to the Spirit, for being God he
preserves creation in the Father through the Son.64
704 "God fashioned man with his own hands [that
is, the Son and the Holy Spirit] and impressed his own form on the flesh
he had fashioned, in such a way that even what was visible might bear
the divine form."65
The Spirit of the promise
705 Disfigured by sin and death, man remains
"in the image of God," in the image of the Son, but is
deprived "of the glory of God,"66 of his
"likeness." The promise made to Abraham inaugurates the
economy of salvation, at the culmination of which the Son himself will
assume that "image"67 and restore it in the
Father's "likeness" by giving it again its Glory, the Spirit
who is "the giver of life."
706 Against all human hope, God promises descendants
to Abraham, as the fruit of faith and of the power of the Holy Spirit.68
In Abraham's progeny all the nations of the earth will be blessed. This
progeny will be Christ himself,69 in whom the outpouring of
the Holy Spirit will "gather into one the children of God who are
scattered abroad."70 God commits himself by his own
solemn oath to giving his beloved Son and "the promised Holy Spirit
. . . [who is] the guarantee of our inheritance until we acquire
possession of it."71
In Theophanies and the Law
707 Theophanies (manifestations of God) light up the
way of the promise, from the patriarchs to Moses and from Joshua to the
visions that inaugurated the missions of the great prophets. Christian
tradition has always recognized that God's Word allowed himself to be
seen and heard in these theophanies, in which the cloud of the Holy
Spirit both revealed him and concealed him in its shadow.
708 This divine pedagogy appears especially in the
gift of the Law.72 God gave the Law as a
"pedagogue" to lead his people toward Christ.73 But
the Law's powerlessness to save man deprived of the divine
"likeness," along with the growing awareness of sin that it
imparts,74 enkindles a desire for the Holy Spirit. The
lamentations of the Psalms bear witness to this.
In the Kingdom and the Exile
709 The Law, the sign of God's promise and covenant,
ought to have governed the hearts and institutions of that people to
whom Abraham's faith gave birth. "If you will obey my voice and
keep my covenant, . . . you shall be to me a kingdom of priests and a
holy nation."75 But after David, Israel gave in to the
temptation of becoming a kingdom like other nations. The Kingdom,
however, the object of the promise made to David,76 would be
the work of the Holy Spirit; it would belong to the poor according to
the Spirit.
710 The forgetting of the Law and the infidelity to
the covenant end in death: it is the Exile, apparently the failure of
the promises, which is in fact the mysterious fidelity of the Savior God
and the beginning of a promised restoration, but according to the
Spirit. The People of God had to suffer this purification.77
In God's plan, the Exile already stands in the shadow of the Cross, and
the Remnant of the poor that returns from the Exile is one of the most
transparent prefigurations of the Church.
Expectation of the Messiah and his Spirit
711 "Behold, I am doing a new thing."78
Two prophetic lines were to develop, one leading to the expectation of
the Messiah, the other pointing to the announcement of a new Spirit.
They converge in the small Remnant, the people of the poor, who await in
hope the "consolation of Israel" and "the redemption of
Jerusalem."79
We have seen earlier how Jesus fulfills the prophecies concerning
himself. We limit ourselves here to those in which the relationship of
the Messiah and his Spirit appears more clearly.
712 The characteristics of the awaited Messiah begin
to appear in the "Book of Emmanuel" ("Isaiah said this
when he saw his glory,"80 speaking of Christ),
especially in the first two verses of Isaiah 11:
-
There shall come forth a shoot from the stump of Jesse,
and a branch shall grow out of his roots.
And the Spirit of the LORD shall rest upon him,
the spirit of wisdom and understanding,
the spirit of counsel and might,
the spirit of knowledge and the fear of the LORD.81
713 The Messiah's characteristics are revealed above
all in the "Servant songs."82 These songs proclaim
the meaning of Jesus' Passion and show how he will pour out the Holy
Spirit to give life to the many: not as an outsider, but by embracing
our "form as slave."83 Taking our death upon
himself, he can communicate to us his own Spirit of life.
714 This is why Christ inaugurates the proclamation
of the Good News by making his own the following passage from Isaiah:84
-
The Spirit of the LORD God is upon me,
because the LORD has anointed me
to bring good tidings to the afflicted;
he has sent me to bind up the broken hearted,
to proclaim liberty to the captives,
and the opening of the prison to those who are bound;
to proclaim the year of the LORD's favor.
715 The prophetic texts that directly concern the
sending of the Holy Spirit are oracles by which God speaks to the heart
of his people in the language of the promise, with the accents of
"love and fidelity."85 St. Peter will proclaim
their fulfillment on the morning of Pentecost.86 According to
these promises, at the "end time" the Lord's Spirit will renew
the hearts of men, engraving a new law in them. He will gather and
reconcile the scattered and divided peoples; he will transform the first
creation, and God will dwell there with men in peace.
716 The People of the "poor"87
- those who, humble and meek, rely solely on their God's mysterious
plans, who await the justice, not of men but of the Messiah - are in the
end the great achievement of the Holy Spirit's hidden mission during the
time of the promises that prepare for Christ's coming. It is this
quality of heart, purified and enlightened by the Spirit, which is
expressed in the Psalms. In these poor, the Spirit is making ready
"a people prepared for the Lord."88
IV. THE SPIRIT OF CHRIST IN THE FULLNESS OF TIME
John, precursor, prophet, and baptist
717 "There was a man sent from God, whose name
was John."89 John was "filled with the Holy Spirit
even from his mother's womb"90 by Christ himself, whom
the Virgin Mary had just conceived by the Holy Spirit. Mary's visitation
to Elizabeth thus became a visit from God to his people.91
718 John is "Elijah [who] must come."92
The fire of the Spirit dwells in him and makes him the forerunner of the
coming Lord. In John, the precursor, the Holy Spirit completes the work
of "[making] ready a people prepared for the Lord."93
719 John the Baptist is "more than a
prophet."94 In him, the Holy Spirit concludes his
speaking through the prophets. John completes the cycle of prophets
begun by Elijah.95 He proclaims the imminence of the
consolation of Israel; he is the "voice" of the Consoler who
is coming.96 As the Spirit of truth will also do, John
"came to bear witness to the light."97 In John's
sight, the Spirit thus brings to completion the careful search of the
prophets and fulfills the longing of the angels.98 "He
on whom you see the Spirit descend and remain, this is he who baptizes
with the Holy Spirit. And I have seen and have borne witness that this
is the Son of God.... Behold, the Lamb of God."99
720 Finally, with John the Baptist, the Holy Spirit
begins the restoration to man of "the divine likeness,"
prefiguring what he would achieve with and in Christ. John's baptism was
for repentance; baptism in water and the Spirit will be a new birth.100
"Rejoice, you who are full of grace"
721 Mary, the all-holy ever-virgin Mother of God, is
the masterwork of the mission of the Son and the Spirit in the fullness
of time. For the first time in the plan of salvation and because his
Spirit had prepared her, the Father found the dwelling place where his
Son and his Spirit could dwell among men. In this sense the Church's
Tradition has often read the most beautiful texts on wisdom in relation
to Mary.101 Mary is acclaimed and represented in the liturgy
as the "Seat of Wisdom."
-
In her, the "wonders of God" that the Spirit was to
fulfill in Christ and the Church began to be manifested:
722 The Holy Spirit prepared Mary by
his grace. It was fitting that the mother of him in whom "the
whole fullness of deity dwells bodily"102 should
herself be "full of grace." She was, by sheer grace,
conceived without sin as the most humble of creatures, the most
capable of welcoming the inexpressible gift of the Almighty. It was
quite correct for the angel Gabriel to greet her as the
"Daughter of Zion": "Rejoice."103 It
is the thanksgiving of the whole People of God, and thus of the
Church, which Mary in her canticle104 lifts up to the
Father in the Holy Spirit while carrying within her the eternal Son.
723 In Mary, the Holy Spirit fulfills the
plan of the Father's loving goodness. Through the Holy Spirit, the
Virgin conceives and gives birth to the Son of God. By the Holy
Spirit's power and her faith, her virginity became uniquely
fruitful.105
724 In Mary, the Holy Spirit manifests the
Son of the Father, now become the Son of the Virgin. She is the
burning bush of the definitive theophany. Filled with the Holy
Spirit she makes the Word visible in the humility of his flesh. It
is to the poor and the first representatives of the gentiles that
she makes him known.106
725 Finally, through Mary, the Holy Spirit
begins to bring men, the objects of God's merciful love,107
into communion with Christ. And the humble are always the
first to accept him: shepherds, magi, Simeon and Anna, the bride and
groom at Cana, and the first disciples.
726 At the end of this mission of the Spirit,
Mary became the Woman, the new Eve ("mother of the
living"), the mother of the "whole Christ."108
As such, she was present with the Twelve, who "with one accord
devoted themselves to prayer,"109 at the dawn of the
"end time" which the Spirit was to inaugurate on the
morning of Pentecost with the manifestation of the Church.
Christ Jesus
727 The entire mission of the Son and the Holy
Spirit, in the fullness of time, is contained in this: that the Son
is the one anointed by the Father's Spirit since his Incarnation -
Jesus is the Christ, the Messiah.
Everything in the second chapter of the Creed is to be read in
this light. Christ's whole work is in fact a joint mission of the
Son and the Holy Spirit. Here, we shall mention only what has to do
with Jesus' promise of the Holy Spirit and the gift of him by the
glorified Lord.
728 Jesus does not reveal the Holy Spirit fully,
until he himself has been glorified through his Death and
Resurrection. Nevertheless, little by little he alludes to him even
in his teaching of the multitudes, as when he reveals that his own
flesh will be food for the life of the world.110 He also
alludes to the Spirit in speaking to Nicodemus,111 to the
Samaritan woman,112 and to those who take part in the
feast of Tabernacles.113 To his disciples he speaks
openly of the Spirit in connection with prayer114 and
with the witness they will have to bear.115
729 Only when the hour has arrived for his
glorification does Jesus promise the coming of the Holy
Spirit, since his Death and Resurrection will fulfill the promise
made to the fathers.116 The Spirit of truth, the other
Paraclete, will be given by the Father in answer to Jesus' prayer;
he will be sent by the Father in Jesus' name; and Jesus will send
him from the Father's side, since he comes from the Father. The Holy
Spirit will come and we shall know him; he will be with us for ever;
he will remain with us. The Spirit will teach us everything, remind
us of all that Christ said to us and bear witness to him. The Holy
Spirit will lead us into all truth and will glorify Christ. He will
prove the world wrong about sin, righteousness, and judgment.
730 At last Jesus' hour arrives:117
he commends his spirit into the Father's hands118 at the
very moment when by his death he conquers death, so that,
"raised from the dead by the glory of the Father,"119
he might immediately give the Holy Spirit by
"breathing" on his disciples.120 From this hour
onward, the mission of Christ and the Spirit becomes the mission of
the Church: "As the Father has sent me, even so I send
you."121
V. THE SPIRIT AND THE CHURCH IN THE LAST DAYS
Pentecost
731 On the day of Pentecost when the seven weeks
of Easter had come to an end, Christ's Passover is fulfilled in the
outpouring of the Holy Spirit, manifested, given, and communicated
as a divine person: of his fullness, Christ, the Lord, pours out the
Spirit in abundance.122
732 On that day, the Holy Trinity is fully
revealed. Since that day, the Kingdom announced by Christ has been
open to those who believe in him: in the humility of the flesh and
in faith, they already share in the communion of the Holy Trinity.
By his coming, which never ceases, the Holy Spirit causes the world
to enter into the "last days," the time of the Church, the
Kingdom already inherited though not yet consummated.
-
We have seen the true Light, we have received the heavenly
Spirit, we have found the true faith: we adore the indivisible
Trinity, who has saved us.123
The Holy Spirit - God's gift
733 "God is Love"124 and
love is his first gift, containing all others. "God's love has
been poured into our hearts through the Holy Spirit who has been
given to us."125
734 Because we are dead or at least wounded
through sin, the first effect of the gift of love is the forgiveness
of our sins. The communion of the Holy Spirit126 in the
Church restores to the baptized the divine likeness lost through
sin.
735 He, then, gives us the "pledge" or
"first fruits" of our inheritance: the very life of the
Holy Trinity, which is to love as "God [has] loved us."127
This love (the "charity" of 1 Cor 13) is the
source of the new life in Christ, made possible because we have
received "power" from the Holy Spirit.128
736 By this power of the Spirit, God's children
can bear much fruit. He who has grafted us onto the true vine will
make us bear "the fruit of the Spirit: . . . love, joy, peace,
patience, kindness, goodness, faithfulness, gentleness,
self-control."129 "We live by the Spirit";
the more we renounce ourselves, the more we "walk by the
Spirit."130
-
Through the Holy Spirit we are restored to paradise, led back to
the Kingdom of heaven, and adopted as children, given confidence
to call God "Father" and to share in Christ's grace,
called children of light and given a share in eternal glory.131
The Holy Spirit and the Church
737 The mission of Christ and the Holy Spirit is
brought to completion in the Church, which is the Body of Christ and
the Temple of the Holy Spirit. This joint mission henceforth brings
Christ's faithful to share in his communion with the Father in the
Holy Spirit. The Spirit prepares men and goes out to them
with his grace, in order to draw them to Christ. The Spirit manifests
the risen Lord to them, recalls his word to them and opens
their minds to the understanding of his Death and Resurrection. He makes
present the mystery of Christ, supremely in the Eucharist, in
order to reconcile them, to bring them into communion with
God, that they may "bear much fruit."132
738 Thus the Church's mission is not an addition
to that of Christ and the Holy Spirit, but is its sacrament: in her
whole being and in all her members, the Church is sent to announce,
bear witness, make present, and spread the mystery of the communion
of the Holy Trinity (the topic of the next article):
-
All of us who have received one and the same Spirit, that is,
the Holy Spirit, are in a sense blended together with one
another and with God. For if Christ, together with the Father's
and his own Spirit, comes to dwell in each of us, though we are
many, still the Spirit is one and undivided. He binds together
the spirits of each and every one of us, . . . and makes all
appear as one in him. For just as the power of Christ's sacred
flesh unites those in whom it dwells into one body, I think that
in the same way the one and undivided Spirit of God, who dwells
in all, leads all into spiritual unity.133
739 Because the Holy Spirit is the anointing of
Christ, it is Christ who, as the head of the Body, pours out the
Spirit among his members to nourish, heal, and organize them in
their mutual functions, to give them life, send them to bear
witness, and associate them to his self-offering to the Father and
to his intercession for the whole world. Through the Church's
sacraments, Christ communicates his Holy and sanctifying Spirit to
the members of his Body. (This will be the topic of Part Two of the
Catechism.)
740 These "mighty works of God,"
offered to believers in the sacraments of the Church, bear their
fruit in the new life in Christ, according to the Spirit. (This will
be the topic of Part Three.)
741 "The Spirit helps us in our weakness;
for we do not know how to pray as we ought, but the Spirit himself
intercedes with sighs too deep for words."134 The
Holy Spirit, the artisan of God's works, is the master of prayer.
(This will be the topic of Part Four.)
IN BRIEF
742 "Because you are sons, God has sent the
Spirit of his Son into our hearts, crying, 'Abba! Father!"' (Gal
4:6).
743 From the beginning to the end of time,
whenever God sends his Son, he always sends his Spirit: their
mission is conjoined and inseparable.
744 In the fullness of time the Holy Spirit
completes in Mary all the preparations for Christ's coming among the
People of God. By the action of the Holy Spirit in her, the Father
gives the world Emmanuel "God-with-us" (Mt 1:23).
745 The Son of God was consecrated as Christ
(Messiah) by the anointing of the Holy Spirit at his Incarnation
(cf. Ps 2:6-7).
746 By his Death and his Resurrection, Jesus is
constituted in glory as Lord and Christ (cf. Acts 2:36).
From his fullness, he poured out the Holy Spirit on the apostles and
the Church.
747 The Holy Spirit, whom Christ the head pours
out on his members, builds, animates, and sanctifies the Church. She
is the sacrament of the Holy Trinity's communion with men.
ARTICLE 9
"I BELIEVE IN THE HOLY CATHOLIC CHURCH"
748 "Christ is the light of humanity; and it
is, accordingly, the heart-felt desire of this sacred Council, being
gathered together in the Holy Spirit, that, by proclaiming his Gospel to
every creature, it may bring to all men that light of Christ which
shines out visibly from the Church."135 These words open
the Second Vatican Council's Dogmatic Constitution on the Church.
By choosing this starting point, the Council demonstrates that the
article of faith about the Church depends entirely on the articles
concerning Christ Jesus. The Church has no other light than Christ's;
according to a favorite image of the Church Fathers, the Church is like
the moon, all its light reflected from the sun.
749 The article concerning the Church also depends
entirely on the article about the Holy Spirit, which immediately
precedes it. "Indeed, having shown that the Spirit is the source
and giver of all holiness, we now confess that it is he who has endowed
the Church with holiness."136 The Church is, in a phrase
used by the Fathers, the place "where the Spirit flourishes."137
750 To believe that the Church is "holy"
and "catholic," and that she is "one" and
"apostolic" (as the Nicene Creed adds), is inseparable from
belief in God, the Father, the Son, and the Holy Spirit. In the
Apostles' Creed we profess "one Holy Church" (Credo . . .
Ecclesiam), and not to believe in the Church, so as not to
confuse God with his works and to attribute clearly to God's goodness all
the gifts he has bestowed on his Church.138
Paragraph 1. The Church in God's Plan
I. NAMES AND IMAGES OF THE CHURCH
751 The word "Church" (Latin ecclesia, from
the Greek ek-ka-lein, to "call out of") means a
convocation or an assembly. It designates the assemblies of the people,
usually for a religious purpose.139 Ekklesia is used
frequently in the Greek Old Testament for the assembly of the Chosen
People before God, above all for their assembly on Mount Sinai where
Israel received the Law and was established by God as his holy people.140
By calling itself "Church," the first community of Christian
believers recognized itself as heir to that assembly. In the Church, God
is "calling together" his people from all the ends of the
earth. The equivalent Greek term Kyriake, from which the English
word Church and the German Kirche are derived, means
"what belongs to the Lord."
752 In Christian usage, the word "church" designates
the liturgical assembly,141 but also the local community142
or the whole universal community of believers.143 These three
meanings are inseparable. "The Church" is the People that God
gathers in the whole world. She exists in local communities and is made
real as a liturgical, above all a Eucharistic, assembly. She draws her
life from the word and the Body of Christ and so herself becomes
Christ's Body.
Symbols of the Church
753 In Scripture, we find a host of interrelated images and
figures through which Revelation speaks of the inexhaustible mystery of
the Church. The images taken from the Old Testament are variations on a
profound theme: the People of God. In the New Testament, all these
images find a new center because Christ has become the head of this
people, which henceforth is his Body.144 Around this center
are grouped images taken "from the life of the shepherd or from
cultivation of the land, from the art of building or from family life
and marriage."145
754 "The Church is, accordingly, a sheepfold,
the sole and necessary gateway to which is Christ. It is also the flock
of which God himself foretold that he would be the shepherd, and whose
sheep, even though governed by human shepherds, are unfailingly
nourished and led by Christ himself, the Good Shepherd and Prince of
Shepherds, who gave his life for his sheep.146
755 "The Church is a cultivated
field, the tillage of God. On that land the ancient olive tree grows
whose holy roots were the prophets and in which the reconciliation of
Jews and Gentiles has been brought about and will be brought about
again. That land, like a choice vineyard, has been planted by the
heavenly cultivator. Yet the true vine is Christ who gives life and
fruitfulness to the branches, that is, to us, who through the Church
remain in Christ, without whom we can do nothing.147
756 "Often, too, the Church is called
the building of God. The Lord compared himself to the stone which
the builders rejected, but which was made into the corner-stone. On this
foundation the Church is built by the apostles and from it the Church
receives solidity and unity. This edifice has many names to describe it:
the house of God in which his family dwells; the household of God
in the Spirit; the dwelling-place of God among men; and, especially, the
holy temple. This temple, symbolized in places of worship built
out of stone, is praised by the Fathers and, not without reason, is
compared in the liturgy to the Holy City, the New Jerusalem. As living
stones we here on earth are built into it. It is this holy city that is
seen by John as it comes down out of heaven from God when the world is
made anew, prepared like a bride adorned for her husband.148
757 "The Church, further, which is
called 'that Jerusalem which is above' and 'our mother', is described as
the spotless spouse of the spotless lamb. It is she whom Christ 'loved
and for whom he delivered himself up that he might sanctify her.' It is
she whom he unites to himself by an unbreakable alliance, and whom he
constantly 'nourishes and cherishes.'"149
II. THE CHURCH'S ORIGIN, FOUNDATION AND MISSION
758 We begin our investigation of the Church's mystery by
meditating on her origin in the Holy Trinity's plan and her progressive
realization in history.
A plan born in the Father's heart
759 "The eternal Father, in accordance with the utterly
gratuitous and mysterious design of his wisdom and goodness, created the
whole universe and chose to raise up men to share in his own divine
life,"150 to which he calls all men in his Son.
"The Father . . . determined to call together in a holy
Church those who should believe in Christ."151 This
"family of God" is gradually formed and takes shape during the
stages of human history, in keeping with the Father's plan. In fact,
"already present in figure at the beginning of the world, this
Church was prepared in marvelous fashion in the history of the people of
Israel and the old Advance. Established in this last age of the world
and made manifest in the outpouring of the Spirit, it will be brought to
glorious completion at the end of time."152
The Church- foreshadowed from the world's beginning
760 Christians of the first centuries said, "The world
was created for the sake of the Church."153 God created
the world for the sake of communion with his divine life, a communion
brought about by the "convocation" of men in Christ, and this
"convocation" is the Church. The Church is the goal of all
things,154 and God permitted such painful upheavals as the
angels' fall and man's sin only as occasions and means for displaying
all the power of his arm and the whole measure of the love he wanted to
give the world:
-
Just as God's will is creation and is called
"the world," so his intention is the salvation of men, and
it is called "the Church."155
The Church - prepared for in the Old Covenant
761 The gathering together of the People of God began at the
moment when sin destroyed the communion of men with God, and that of men
among themselves. The gathering together of the Church is, as it were,
God's reaction to the chaos provoked by sin. This reunification is
achieved secretly in the heart of all peoples: "In every nation
anyone who fears him and does what is right is acceptable" to God.156
762 The remote preparation for this gathering together
of the People of God begins when he calls Abraham and promises that he
will become the father of a great people.157 Its immediate
preparation begins with Israel's election as the People of God. By this
election, Israel is to be the sign of the future gathering of All
nations.158 But the prophets accuse Israel of breaking the
covenant and behaving like a prostitute. They announce a new and eternal
covenant. "Christ instituted this New Covenant."159
The Church - instituted by Christ Jesus
763 It was the Son's task to accomplish the Father's plan of
salvation in the fullness of time. Its accomplishment was the reason for
his being sent.160 "The Lord Jesus inaugurated his
Church by preaching the Good News, that is, the coming of the Reign of
God, promised over the ages in the scriptures."161 To
fulfill the Father's will, Christ ushered in the Kingdom of heaven on
earth. The Church "is the Reign of Christ already present in
mystery."162
764 "This Kingdom shines out before men in the word, in
the works and in the presence of Christ."163 To welcome
Jesus' word is to welcome "the Kingdom itself."164
The seed and beginning of the Kingdom are the "little flock"
of those whom Jesus came to gather around him, the flock whose shepherd
he is.165 They form Jesus' true family.166 To
those whom he thus gathered around him, he taught a new "way of
acting" and a prayer of their own.167
765 The Lord Jesus endowed his community with a structure that
will remain until the Kingdom is fully achieved. Before all else there
is the choice of the Twelve with Peter as their head.168
Representing the twelve tribes of Israel, they are the foundation stones
of the new Jerusalem.169 The Twelve and the other disciples
share in Christ's mission and his power, but also in his lot.170
By all his actions, Christ prepares and builds his Church.
766 The Church is born primarily of Christ's total self-giving
for our salvation, anticipated in the institution of the Eucharist and
fulfilled on the cross. "The origin and growth of the Church are
symbolized by the blood and water which flowed from the open side of the
crucified Jesus."171 "For it was from the side of
Christ as he slept the sleep of death upon the cross that there came
forth the 'wondrous sacrament of the whole Church.'"172
As Eve was formed from the sleeping Adam's side, so the Church was born
from the pierced heart of Christ hanging dead on the cross.173
The Church - revealed by the Holy Spirit
767 "When the work which the Father gave the Son to do on
earth was accomplished, the Holy Spirit was sent on the day of Pentecost
in order that he might continually sanctify the Church."174
Then "the Church was openly displayed to the crowds and the spread
of the Gospel among the nations, through preaching, was begun."175
As the "convocation" of all men for salvation, the Church in
her very nature is missionary, sent by Christ to all the nations to make
disciples of them.176
768 So that she can fulfill her mission, the Holy Spirit
"bestows upon [the Church] varied hierarchic and charismatic gifts,
and in this way directs her."177 "Henceforward the
Church, endowed with the gifts of her founder and faithfully observing
his precepts of charity, humility and self-denial, receives the mission
of proclaiming and establishing among all peoples the Kingdom of Christ
and of God, and she is on earth the seed and the beginning of that
kingdom."178
The Church - perfected in glory
769 "The Church . . . will receive its
perfection only in the glory of heaven,"179 at the time
of Christ's glorious return. Until that day, "the Church progresses
on her pilgrimage amidst this world's persecutions and God's
consolations."180 Here below she knows that she is in
exile far from the Lord, and longs for the full coming of the Kingdom,
when she will "be united in glory with her king."181
The Church, and through her the world, will not be perfected in glory
without great trials. Only then will "all the just from the time of
Adam, 'from Abel, the just one, to the last of the elect,' . . .
be gathered together in the universal Church in the Father's
presence."182
III. THE MYSTERY OF THE CHURCH
770 The Church is in history, but at the same time she
transcends it. It is only "with the eyes of faith"183
that one can see her in her visible reality and at the same time in her
spiritual reality as bearer of divine life.
The Church - both visible and spiritual
771 "The one mediator, Christ, established and ever
sustains here on earth his holy Church, the community of faith, hope,
and charity, as a visible organization through which he communicates
truth and grace to all men."184 The Church is at the
same time:
- a "society structured with hierarchical organs and the
mystical body of Christ;
- the visible society and the spiritual community;
- the earthly Church and the Church endowed with heavenly
riches."185
These dimensions together constitute "one complex reality which
comes together from a human and a divine element":186
-
The Church is essentially both human and
divine, visible but endowed with invisible realities, zealous in
action and dedicated to contemplation, present in the world, but as
a pilgrim, so constituted that in her the human is directed toward
and subordinated to the divine, the visible to the invisible, action
to contemplation, and this present world to that city yet to come,
the object of our quest.187
O humility! O sublimity! Both tabernacle of cedar and sanctuary
of God; earthly dwelling and celestial palace; house of clay and
royal hall; body of death and temple of light; and at last both
object of scorn to the proud and bride of Christ! She is black but
beautiful, O daughters of Jerusalem, for even if the labor and pain
of her long exile may have discolored her, yet heaven's beauty has
adorned her.188
The Church - mystery of men's union with God
772 It is in the Church that Christ fulfills and reveals his
own mystery as the purpose of God's plan: "to unite all things in
him."189 St. Paul calls the nuptial union of Christ and
the Church "a great mystery." Because she is united to Christ
as to her bridegroom, she becomes a mystery in her turn.190
Contemplating this mystery in her, Paul exclaims: "Christ in you,
the hope of glory."191
773 In the Church this communion of men with God, in the
"love [that] never ends," is the purpose which governs
everything in her that is a sacramental means, tied to this passing
world.192 "[The Church's] structure is totally ordered
to the holiness of Christ's members. And holiness is measured according
to the 'great mystery' in which the Bride responds with the gift of love
to the gift of the Bridegroom."193 Mary goes before us
all in the holiness that is the Church's mystery as "the bride
without spot or wrinkle."194 This is why the
"Marian" dimension of the Church precedes the
"Petrine."195
The universal Sacrament of Salvation
774 The Greek word mysterion was
translated into Latin by two terms: mysterium and sacramentum.
In later usage the term sacramentum emphasizes the visible sign
of the hidden reality of salvation which was indicated by the term mysterium.
In this sense, Christ himself is the mystery of salvation: "For
there is no other mystery of God, except Christ."196 The
saving work of his holy and sanctifying humanity is the sacrament of
salvation, which is revealed and active in the Church's sacraments
(which the Eastern Churches also call "the holy mysteries").
The seven sacraments are the signs and instruments by which the Holy
Spirit spreads the grace of Christ the head throughout the Church which
is his Body. The Church, then, both contains and communicates the
invisible grace she signifies. It is in this analogical sense, that the
Church is called a "sacrament."
775 "The Church, in Christ, is like a sacrament - a sign
and instrument, that is, of communion with God and of unity among all
men."197 The Church's first purpose is to be the
sacrament of the inner union of men with God. Because men's
communion with one another is rooted in that union with God, the Church
is also the sacrament of the unity of the human race. In her,
this unity is already begun, since she gathers men "from every
nation, from all tribes and peoples and tongues";198 at
the same time, the Church is the "sign and instrument" of the
full realization of the unity yet to come.
776 As sacrament, the Church is Christ's instrument. "She
is taken up by him also as the instrument for the salvation of
all," "the universal sacrament of salvation," by which
Christ is "at once manifesting and actualizing the mystery of God's
love for men."199 The Church "is the visible plan
of God's love for humanity," because God desires "that the
whole human race may become one People of God, form one Body of Christ,
and be built up into one temple of the Holy Spirit."200
IN BRIEF
777 The word "Church" means "convocation."
It designates the assembly of those whom God's Word
"convokes," i.e., gathers together to form the People of God,
and who themselves, nourished with the Body of Christ, become the Body
of Christ.
778 The Church is both the means and the goal of God's plan:
prefigured in creation, prepared for in the Old Covenant, founded by the
words and actions of Jesus Christ, fulfilled by his redeeming cross and
his Resurrection, the Church has been manifested as the mystery of
salvation by the outpouring of the Holy Spirit. She will be perfected in
the glory of heaven as the assembly of all the redeemed of the earth
(cf. Rev 14:4).
779 The Church is both visible and spiritual, a hierarchical
society and the Mystical Body of Christ. She is one, yet formed of two
components, human and divine. That is her mystery, which only faith can
accept.
780 The Church in this world is the sacrament of salvation,
the sign and the instrument of the communion of God and men.
Paragraph 2. The Church - People of God, Body of Christ, Temple of
the Holy Spirit
I. THE CHURCH - PEOPLE OF GOD
781 "At all times and in every race, anyone who
fears God and does what is right has been acceptable to him. He has,
however, willed to make men holy and save them, not as individuals
without any bond or link between them, but rather to make them into a
people who might acknowledge him and serve him in holiness. He therefore
chose the Israelite race to be his own people and established a covenant
with it. He gradually instructed this people. . . . All these things,
however, happened as a preparation for and figure of that new and
perfect covenant which was to be ratified in Christ . . . the New
Covenant in his blood; he called together a race made up of Jews and
Gentiles which would be one, not according to the flesh, but in the
Spirit."201
Characteristics of the People of God
782 The People of God is marked by characteristics
that clearly distinguish it from all other religious, ethnic, political,
or cultural groups found in history:
- It is the People of God: God is not the property of any
one people. But he acquired a people for himself from those who
previously were not a people: "a chosen race, a royal priesthood, a
holy nation."202
- One becomes a member of this people not by a physical
birth, but by being "born anew," a birth "of water and
the Spirit,"203 that is, by faith in Christ, and
Baptism.
- This People has for its Head Jesus the Christ (the anointed, the
Messiah). Because the same anointing, the Holy Spirit, flows from the
head into the body, this is "the messianic people."
- "The status of this people is that of the dignity and
freedom of the sons of God, in whose hearts the Holy Spirit dwells as in
a temple."
- "Its law is the new commandment to love as Christ
loved us."204 This is the "new" law of the
Holy Spirit.205
- Its mission is to be salt of the earth and light of the
world.206 This people is "a most sure seed of unity,
hope, and salvation for the whole human race."
- Its destiny, finally, "is the Kingdom of God which has
been begun by God himself on earth and which must be further extended
until it has been brought to perfection by him at the end of time."207
A priestly, prophetic, and royal people
783 Jesus Christ is the one whom the Father anointed
with the Holy Spirit and established as priest, prophet, and king. The
whole People of God participates in these three offices of Christ and
bears the responsibilities for mission and service that flow from them.208
784 On entering the People of God through faith and
Baptism, one receives a share in this people's unique, priestly vocation:
"Christ the Lord, high priest taken from among men, has made this
new people 'a kingdom of priests to God, his Father.' The baptized, by
regeneration and the anointing of the Holy Spirit, are consecrated to
be a spiritual house and a holy priesthood."209
785 "The holy People of God shares also in
Christ's prophetic office," above all in the supernatural
sense of faith that belongs to the whole People, lay and clergy, when it
"unfailingly adheres to this faith . . . once for all delivered to
the saints,"210 and when it deepens its understanding
and becomes Christ's witness in the midst of this world.
786 Finally, the People of God shares in the royal
office of Christ. He exercises his kingship by drawing all men to
himself through his death and Resurrection.211 Christ, King
and Lord of the universe, made himself the servant of all, for he came
"not to be served but to serve, and to give his life as a ransom
for many."212 For the Christian, "to reign is to
serve him," particularly when serving "the poor and the
suffering, in whom the Church recognizes the image of her poor and
suffering founder."213 The People of God fulfills its
royal dignity by a life in keeping with its vocation to serve with
Christ.
-
The sign of the cross makes kings of all those reborn in Christ
and the anointing of the Holy Spirit consecrates them as priests, so
that, apart from the particular service of our ministry, all
spiritual and rational Christians are recognized as members of this
royal race and sharers in Christ's priestly office. What, indeed, is
as royal for a soul as to govern the body in obedience to God? And
what is as priestly as to dedicate a pure conscience to the Lord and
to offer the spotless offerings of devotion on the altar of the
heart?214
II. THE CHURCH - BODY OF CHRIST
The Church is communion with Jesus
787 From the beginning, Jesus associated his
disciples with his own life, revealed the mystery of the Kingdom to
them, and gave them a share in his mission, joy, and sufferings.215
Jesus spoke of a still more intimate communion between him and those who
would follow him: "Abide in me, and I in you. . . . I am the vine,
you are the branches."216 And he proclaimed a mysterious
and real communion between his own body and ours: "He who eats my
flesh and drinks my blood abides in me, and I in him."217
788 When his visible presence was taken from them,
Jesus did not leave his disciples orphans. He promised to remain with
them until the end of time; he sent them his Spirit.218 As a
result communion with Jesus has become, in a way, more intense: "By
communicating his Spirit, Christ mystically constitutes as his body
those brothers of his who are called together from every nation."219
789 The comparison of the Church with the body casts
light on the intimate bond between Christ and his Church. Not only is
she gathered around him; she is united in him, in his
body. Three aspects of the Church as the Body of Christ are to be more
specifically noted: the unity of all her members with each other as a
result of their union with Christ; Christ as head of the Body; and the
Church as bride of Christ.
"One Body"
790 Believers who respond to God's word and become
members of Christ's Body, become intimately united with him: "In
that body the life of Christ is communicated to those who believe, and
who, through the sacraments, are united in a hidden and real way to
Christ in his Passion and glorification."220 This is
especially true of Baptism, which unites us to Christ's death and
Resurrection, and the Eucharist, by which "really sharing in the
body of the Lord, . . . we are taken up into communion with him and with
one another."221
791 The body's unity does not do away with the
diversity of its members: "In the building up of Christ's Body
there is engaged a diversity of members and functions. There is only one
Spirit who, according to his own richness and the needs of the
ministries, gives his different gifts for the welfare of the
Church."222 The unity of the Mystical Body produces and
stimulates charity among the faithful: "From this it follows that
if one member suffers anything, all the members suffer with him, and if
one member is honored, all the members together rejoice."223
Finally, the unity of the Mystical Body triumphs over all human
divisions: "For as many of you as were baptized into Christ have
put on Christ. There is neither Jew nor Greek, there is neither slave
nor free, there is neither male nor female; for you are all one in
Christ Jesus."224
"Christ is the Head of this Body"
792 Christ "is the head of the body, the
Church."225 He is the principle of creation and
redemption. Raised to the Father's glory, "in everything he [is]
preeminent,"226 especially in the Church, through whom
he extends his reign over all things.
793 Christ unites us with his Passover: all
his members must strive to resemble him, "until Christ be
formed" in them.227 "For this reason we . . . are
taken up into the mysteries of his life, . . . associated with his
sufferings as the body with its head, suffering with him, that with him
we may be glorified."228
794 Christ provides for our growth: to make
us grow toward him, our head,229 he provides in his Body, the
Church, the gifts and assistance by which we help one another along the
way of salvation.
795 Christ and his Church thus together make up the
"whole Christ" (Christus totus). The Church is one
with Christ. The saints are acutely aware of this unity:
-
Let us rejoice then and give thanks that we have become not only
Christians, but Christ himself. Do you understand and grasp,
brethren, God's grace toward us? Marvel and rejoice: we have become
Christ. For if he is the head, we are the members; he and we
together are the whole man.... The fullness of Christ then is the
head and the members. But what does "head and members"
mean? Christ and the Church.230
Our redeemer has shown himself to be one person with the holy
Church whom he has taken to himself.231
Head and members form as it were one and the same mystical
person.232
A reply of St. Joan of Arc to her judges sums up the faith of the
holy doctors and the good sense of the believer: "About Jesus
Christ and the Church, I simply know they're just one thing, and we
shouldn't complicate the matter."233
The Church is the Bride of Christ
796 The unity of Christ and the Church, head and
members of one Body, also implies the distinction of the two within a
personal relationship. This aspect is often expressed by the image of
bridegroom and bride. The theme of Christ as Bridegroom of the Church
was prepared for by the prophets and announced by John the Baptist.234
The Lord referred to himself as the "bridegroom."235
The Apostle speaks of the whole Church and of each of the faithful,
members of his Body, as a bride "betrothed" to Christ the Lord
so as to become but one spirit with him.236 The Church is the
spotless bride of the spotless Lamb.237 "Christ loved
the Church and gave himself up for her, that he might sanctify
her."238 He has joined her with himself in an
everlasting covenant and never stops caring for her as for his own body:239
-
This is the whole Christ, head and body, one formed from many . .
. whether the head or members speak, it is Christ who speaks. He
speaks in his role as the head (ex persona capitis) and in
his role as body (ex persona corporis). What does this
mean? "The two will become one flesh. This is a great mystery,
and I am applying it to Christ and the Church."240
And the Lord himself says in the Gospel: "So they are no longer
two, but one flesh."241 They are, in fact, two
different persons, yet they are one in the conjugal union, . . . as
head, he calls himself the bridegroom, as body, he calls himself
"bride."242
III. THE CHURCH IS THE TEMPLE OF THE HOLY SPIRIT
797 "What the soul is to the human body, the
Holy Spirit is to the Body of Christ, which is the Church."243
"To this Spirit of Christ, as an invisible principle, is to be
ascribed the fact that all the parts of the body are joined one with the
other and with their exalted head; for the whole Spirit of Christ is in
the head, the whole Spirit is in the body, and the whole Spirit is in
each of the members."244 The Holy Spirit makes the
Church "the temple of the living God":245
-
Indeed, it is to the Church herself that the "Gift of
God" has been entrusted.... In it is in her that communion with
Christ has been deposited, that is to say: the Holy Spirit, the
pledge of incorruptibility, the strengthening of our faith and the
ladder of our ascent to God.... For where the Church is, there also
is God's Spirit; where God's Spirit is, there is the Church and
every grace.246
798 The Holy Spirit is "the principle of every
vital and truly saving action in each part of the Body."247
He works in many ways to build up the whole Body in charity:248
by God's Word "which is able to build you up";249
by Baptism, through which he forms Christ's Body;250 by the
sacraments, which give growth and healing to Christ's members; by
"the grace of the apostles, which holds first place among his
gifts";251 by the virtues, which make us act according
to what is good; finally, by the many special graces (called
"charisms"), by which he makes the faithful "fit and
ready to undertake various tasks and offices for the renewal and
building up of the Church."252
Charisms
799 Whether extraordinary or simple and humble,
charisms are graces of the Holy Spirit which directly or indirectly
benefit the Church, ordered as they are to her building up, to the good
of men, and to the needs of the world.
800 Charisms are to be accepted with gratitude by
the person who receives them and by all members of the Church as well.
They are a wonderfully rich grace for the apostolic vitality and for the
holiness of the entire Body of Christ, provided they really are genuine
gifts of the Holy Spirit and are used in full conformity with authentic
promptings of this same Spirit, that is, in keeping with charity, the
true measure of all charisms.253
801 It is in this sense that discernment of charisms
is always necessary. No charism is exempt from being referred and
submitted to the Church's shepherds. "Their office [is] not indeed
to extinguish the Spirit, but to test all things and hold fast to what
is good,"254 so that all the diverse and complementary
charisms work together "for the common good."255
IN BRIEF
802 Christ Jesus "gave himself for us to redeem
us from all iniquity and to purify for himself a people of his own"
(Titus 2:14).
803 "You are a chosen race, a royal priesthood,
a holy nation, God's own people" (1 Pet 2:9).
804 One enters into the People of God by faith and
Baptism. "All men are called to belong to the new People of
God" (LG 13), so that, in Christ, "men may form one
family and one People of God" (AG 1).
805 The Church is the Body of Christ. Through the
Spirit and his action in the sacraments, above all the Eucharist,
Christ, who once was dead and is now risen, establishes the community of
believers as his own Body.
806 In the unity of this Body, there is a diversity
of members and functions. All members are linked to one another,
especially to those who are suffering, to the poor and persecuted.
807 The Church is this Body of which Christ is the
head: she lives from him, in him, and for him; he lives with her and in
her.
808 The Church is the Bride of Christ: he loved her
and handed himself over for her. He has purified her by his blood and
made her the fruitful mother of all God's children.
809 The Church is the Temple of the Holy Spirit. The
Spirit is the soul, as it were, of the Mystical Body, the source of its
life, of its unity in diversity, and of the riches of its gifts and
charisms.
810 "Hence the universal Church is seen to be
'a people brought into unity from the unity of the Father, the Son, and
the Holy Spirit'" (LG 4 citing St. Cyprian, De Dom.
orat 23: PL 4, 553).
Paragraph 3. The Church Is One, Holy, Catholic, and Apostolic
811 "This is the sole Church of Christ, which
in the Creed we profess to be one, holy, catholic and apostolic."256
These four characteristics, inseparably linked with each other,257
indicate essential features of the Church and her mission. The Church
does not possess them of herself; it is Christ who, through the Holy
Spirit, makes his Church one, holy, catholic, and apostolic, and it is
he who calls her to realize each of these qualities.
812 Only faith can recognize that the Church
possesses these properties from her divine source. But their historical
manifestations are signs that also speak clearly to human reason. As the
First Vatican Council noted, the "Church herself, with her
marvelous propagation, eminent holiness, and inexhaustible fruitfulness
in everything good, her catholic unity and invincible stability, is a
great and perpetual motive of credibility and an irrefutable witness of
her divine mission."258
I. THE CHURCH IS ONE
"The sacred mystery of the Church's unity" (UR 2)
813 The Church is one because of her source:
"the highest exemplar and source of this mystery is the unity, in
the Trinity of Persons, of one God, the Father and the Son in the Holy
Spirit."259 The Church is one because of her founder:
for "the Word made flesh, the prince of peace, reconciled all men
to God by the cross, . . . restoring the unity of all in one people and
one body."260 The Church is one because of her
"soul": "It is the Holy Spirit, dwelling in those who
believe and pervading and ruling over the entire Church, who brings
about that wonderful communion of the faithful and joins them together
so intimately in Christ that he is the principle of the Church's
unity."261 Unity is of the essence of the Church:
-
What an astonishing mystery! There is one Father of the universe,
one Logos of the universe, and also one Holy Spirit, everywhere one
and the same; there is also one virgin become mother, and I should
like to call her "Church."262
814 From the beginning, this one Church has been
marked by a great diversity which comes from both the variety of
God's gifts and the diversity of those who receive them. Within the
unity of the People of God, a multiplicity of peoples and cultures is
gathered together. Among the Church's members, there are different
gifts, offices, conditions, and ways of life. "Holding a rightful
place in the communion of the Church there are also particular Churches
that retain their own traditions."263 The great richness
of such diversity is not opposed to the Church's unity. Yet sin and the
burden of its consequences constantly threaten the gift of unity. And so
the Apostle has to exhort Christians to "maintain the unity of the
Spirit in the bond of peace."264
815 What are these bonds of unity? Above all,
charity "binds everything together in perfect harmony."265
But the unity of the pilgrim Church is also assured by visible bonds of
communion:
- profession of one faith received from the Apostles;
-common celebration of divine worship, especially of the sacraments;
- apostolic succession through the sacrament of Holy Orders,
maintaining the fraternal concord of God's family.266
816 "The sole Church of Christ [is that] which
our Savior, after his Resurrection, entrusted to Peter's pastoral care,
commissioning him and the other apostles to extend and rule it. . . .
This Church, constituted and organized as a society in the present
world, subsists in (subsistit in) the Catholic Church, which is
governed by the successor of Peter and by the bishops in communion with
him."267
-
The Second Vatican Council's Decree on Ecumenism explains:
"For it is through Christ's Catholic Church alone, which is the
universal help toward salvation, that the fullness of the means of
salvation can be obtained. It was to the apostolic college alone, of
which Peter is the head, that we believe that our Lord entrusted all
the blessings of the New Covenant, in order to establish on earth
the one Body of Christ into which all those should be fully
incorporated who belong in any way to the People of God."268
Wounds to unity
817 In fact, "in this one and only Church of
God from its very beginnings there arose certain rifts, which the
Apostle strongly censures as damnable. But in subsequent centuries much
more serious dissensions appeared and large communities became separated
from full communion with the Catholic Church - for which, often enough,
men of both sides were to blame."269 The ruptures that
wound the unity of Christ's Body - here we must distinguish heresy,
apostasy, and schism270 - do not occur without human sin:
-
Where there are sins, there are also divisions, schisms, heresies,
and disputes. Where there is virtue, however, there also are harmony
and unity, from which arise the one heart and one soul of all
believers.271
818 "However, one cannot charge with the sin of
the separation those who at present are born into these communities
[that resulted from such separation] and in them are brought up in the
faith of Christ, and the Catholic Church accepts them with respect and
affection as brothers . . . . All who have been justified by faith in
Baptism are incorporated into Christ; they therefore have a right to be
called Christians, and with good reason are accepted as brothers in the
Lord by the children of the Catholic Church."272
819 "Furthermore, many elements of
sanctification and of truth"273 are found outside the
visible confines of the Catholic Church: "the written Word of God;
the life of grace; faith, hope, and charity, with the other interior
gifts of the Holy Spirit, as well as visible elements."274
Christ's Spirit uses these Churches and ecclesial communities as means
of salvation, whose power derives from the fullness of grace and truth
that Christ has entrusted to the Catholic Church. All these blessings
come from Christ and lead to him,275 and are in themselves
calls to "Catholic unity."276
Toward unity
820 "Christ bestowed unity on his Church from
the beginning. This unity, we believe, subsists in the Catholic Church
as something she can never lose, and we hope that it will continue to
increase until the end of time."277 Christ always gives
his Church the gift of unity, but the Church must always pray and work
to maintain, reinforce, and perfect the unity that Christ wills for her.
This is why Jesus himself prayed at the hour of his Passion, and does
not cease praying to his Father, for the unity of his disciples:
"That they may all be one. As you, Father, are in me and I am in
you, may they also be one in us, . . . so that the world may know that
you have sent me."278 The desire to recover the unity of
all Christians is a gift of Christ and a call of the Holy Spirit.279
821 Certain things are required in order to respond
adequately to this call:
- a permanent renewal of the Church in greater fidelity to her
vocation; such renewal is the driving-force of the movement toward
unity;280
- conversion of heart as the faithful "try to live holier
lives according to the Gospel";281 for it is the
unfaithfulness of the members to Christ's gift which causes divisions;
- prayer in common, because "change of heart and holiness
of life, along with public and private prayer for the unity of
Christians, should be regarded as the soul of the whole ecumenical
movement, and merits the name 'spiritual ecumenism;"'282
- fraternal knowledge of each other;283
- ecumenical formation of the faithful and especially of
priests;284
- dialogue among theologians and meetings among Christians of
the different churches and communities;285
- collaboration among Christians in various areas of service
to mankind.286 "Human service" is the idiomatic
phrase.
822 Concern for achieving unity "involves the
whole Church, faithful and clergy alike."287 But we must
realize "that this holy objective - the reconciliation of all
Christians in the unity of the one and only Church of Christ -
transcends human powers and gifts." That is why we place all our
hope "in the prayer of Christ for the Church, in the love of the
Father for us, and in the power of the Holy Spirit."288
II. THE CHURCH IS HOLY
823 "The Church . . . is held, as a matter of
faith, to be unfailingly holy. This is because Christ, the Son of God,
who with the Father and the Spirit is hailed as 'alone holy,' loved the
Church as his Bride, giving himself up for her so as to sanctify her; he
joined her to himself as his body and endowed her with the gift of the
Holy Spirit for the glory of God."289 The Church, then,
is "the holy People of God,"290 and her members are
called "saints."291
824 United with Christ, the Church is sanctified by
him; through him and with him she becomes sanctifying. "All the
activities of the Church are directed, as toward their end, to the
sanctification of men in Christ and the glorification of God."292
It is in the Church that "the fullness of the means of
salvation"293 has been deposited. It is in her that
"by the grace of God we acquire holiness."294
825 "The Church on earth is endowed already
with a sanctity that is real though imperfect."295 In
her members perfect holiness is something yet to be acquired:
"Strengthened by so many and such great means of salvation, all the
faithful, whatever their condition or state - though each in his own way
- are called by the Lord to that perfection of sanctity by which the
Father himself is perfect."296
826 Charity is the soul of the holiness to which all
are called: it "governs, shapes, and perfects all the means of
sanctification."297
-
If the Church was a body composed of different members, it
couldn't lack the noblest of all; it must have a Heart, and a
Heart BURNING WITH LOVE. And I realized that this love alone
was the true motive force which enabled the other members of the
Church to act; if it ceased to function, the Apostles would forget
to preach the gospel, the Martyrs would refuse to shed their blood.
LOVE, IN FACT, IS THE VOCATION WHICH INCLUDES ALL OTHERS; IT'S A
UNIVERSE OF ITS OWN, COMPRISING ALL TIME AND SPACE - IT'S ETERNAL! 298
827 "Christ, 'holy, innocent, and undefiled,'
knew nothing of sin, but came only to expiate the sins of the people.
The Church, however, clasping sinners to her bosom, at once holy and
always in need of purification, follows constantly the path of penance
and renewal."299 All members of the Church, including
her ministers, must acknowledge that they are sinners.300 In
everyone, the weeds of sin will still be mixed with the good wheat of
the Gospel until the end of time.301 Hence the Church gathers
sinners already caught up in Christ's salvation but still on the way to
holiness:
-
The Church is therefore holy, though having sinners in her midst,
because she herself has no other life but the life of grace. If they
live her life, her members are sanctified; if they move away from
her life, they fall into sins and disorders that prevent the
radiation of her sanctity. This is why she suffers and does penance
for those offenses, of which she has the power to free her children
through the blood of Christ and the gift of the Holy Spirit.302
828 By canonizing some of the faithful, i.e.,
by solemnly proclaiming that they practiced heroic virtue and lived in
fidelity to God's grace, the Church recognizes the power of the Spirit
of holiness within her and sustains the hope of believers by proposing
the saints to them as models and intercessors.303 "The
saints have always been the source and origin of renewal in the most
difficult moments in the Church's history."304 Indeed,
"holiness is the hidden source and infallible measure of her
apostolic activity and missionary zeal."305
829 "But while in the most Blessed Virgin the
Church has already reached that perfection whereby she exists without
spot or wrinkle, the faithful still strive to conquer sin and increase
in holiness. And so they turn their eyes to Mary":306 in
her, the Church is already the "all-holy."
III. THE CHURCH IS CATHOLIC
What does "catholic" mean?
830 The word "catholic" means
"universal," in the sense of "according to the
totality" or "in keeping with the whole." The Church is
catholic in a double sense:
First, the Church is catholic because Christ is present in her.
"Where there is Christ Jesus, there is the Catholic Church."307
In her subsists the fullness of Christ's body united with its head; this
implies that she receives from him "the fullness of the means of
salvation"308 which he has willed: correct and complete
confession of faith, full sacramental life, and ordained ministry in
apostolic succession. The Church was, in this fundamental sense,
catholic on the day of Pentecost309 and will always be so
until the day of the Parousia.
831 Secondly, the Church is catholic because she has
been sent out by Christ on a mission to the whole of the human race:310
-
All men are called to belong to the new People of God. This
People, therefore, while remaining one and only one, is to be spread
throughout the whole world and to all ages in order that the design
of God's will may be fulfilled: he made human nature one in the
beginning and has decreed that all his children who were scattered
should be finally gathered together as one. . . . The character of
universality which adorns the People of God is a gift from the Lord
himself whereby the Catholic Church ceaselessly and efficaciously
seeks for the return of all humanity and all its goods, under Christ
the Head in the unity of his Spirit.311
Each particular Church is "catholic"
832 "The Church of Christ is really present in
all legitimately organized local groups of the faithful, which, in so
far as they are united to their pastors, are also quite appropriately
called Churches in the New Testament. . . . In them the faithful are
gathered together through the preaching of the Gospel of Christ, and the
mystery of the Lord's Supper is celebrated. . . . In these communities,
though they may often be small and poor, or existing in the diaspora,
Christ is present, through whose power and influence the One, Holy,
Catholic, and Apostolic Church is constituted."312
833 The phrase "particular Church," which
is first of all the diocese (or eparchy), refers to a community of the
Christian faithful in communion of faith and sacraments with their
bishop ordained in apostolic succession.313 These particular
Churches "are constituted after the model of the universal Church;
it is in these and formed out of them that the one and unique Catholic
Church exists."314
834 Particular Churches are fully catholic through
their communion with one of them, the Church of Rome "which
presides in charity."315 "For with this church, by
reason of its pre-eminence, the whole Church, that is the faithful
everywhere, must necessarily be in accord."316 Indeed,
"from the incarnate Word's descent to us, all Christian churches
everywhere have held and hold the great Church that is here [at Rome] to
be their only basis and foundation since, according to the Savior's
promise, the gates of hell have never prevailed against her."317
835 "Let us be very careful not to conceive of
the universal Church as the simple sum, or . . . the more or less
anomalous federation of essentially different particular churches. In
the mind of the Lord the Church is universal by vocation and mission,
but when she put down her roots in a variety of cultural, social, and
human terrains, she takes on different external expressions and
appearances in each part of the world."318 The rich
variety of ecclesiastical disciplines, liturgical rites, and theological
and spiritual heritages proper to the local churches "unified in a
common effort, shows all the more resplendently the catholicity of the
undivided Church."319
Who belongs to the Catholic Church?
836 "All men are called to this catholic unity
of the People of God. . . . And to it, in different ways, belong or are
ordered: the Catholic faithful, others who believe in Christ, and
finally all mankind, called by God's grace to salvation."320
837 "Fully incorporated into the society
of the Church are those who, possessing the Spirit of Christ, accept all
the means of salvation given to the Church together with her entire
organization, and who - by the bonds constituted by the profession of
faith, the sacraments, ecclesiastical government, and communion - are
joined in the visible structure of the Church of Christ, who rules her
through the Supreme Pontiff and the bishops. Even though incorporated
into the Church, one who does not however persevere in charity is not
saved. He remains indeed in the bosom of the Church, but 'in body' not
'in heart.'"321
838 "The Church knows that she is joined in
many ways to the baptized who are honored by the name of Christian, but
do not profess the Catholic faith in its entirety or have not preserved
unity or communion under the successor of Peter."322
Those "who believe in Christ and have been properly baptized are
put in a certain, although imperfect, communion with the Catholic
Church."323 With the Orthodox Churches, this
communion is so profound "that it lacks little to attain the
fullness that would permit a common celebration of the Lord's
Eucharist."324
The Church and non-Christians
839 "Those who have not yet received the Gospel
are related to the People of God in various ways."325
The relationship of the Church with the Jewish People. When
she delves into her own mystery, the Church, the People of God in the
New Covenant, discovers her link with the Jewish People,326
"the first to hear the Word of God."327 The Jewish
faith, unlike other non-Christian religions, is already a response to
God's revelation in the Old Covenant. To the Jews "belong the
sonship, the glory, the covenants, the giving of the law, the worship,
and the promises; to them belong the patriarchs, and of their race,
according to the flesh, is the Christ",328 "for the
gifts and the call of God are irrevocable."329
840 And when one considers the future, God's People
of the Old Covenant and the new People of God tend towards similar
goals: expectation of the coming (or the return) of the Messiah. But one
awaits the return of the Messiah who died and rose from the dead and is
recognized as Lord and Son of God; the other awaits the coming of a
Messiah, whose features remain hidden till the end of time; and the
latter waiting is accompanied by the drama of not knowing or of
misunderstanding Christ Jesus.
841 The Church's relationship with the Muslims.
"The plan of salvation also includes those who acknowledge the
Creator, in the first place amongst whom are the Muslims; these profess
to hold the faith of Abraham, and together with us they adore the one,
merciful God, mankind's judge on the last day."330
842 The Church's bond with non-Christian
religions is in the first place the common origin and end of the
human race:
-
All nations form but one community. This is so because all stem
from the one stock which God created to people the entire earth, and
also because all share a common destiny, namely God. His providence,
evident goodness, and saving designs extend to all against the day
when the elect are gathered together in the holy city. . .331
843 The Catholic Church recognizes in other
religions that search, among shadows and images, for the God who is
unknown yet near since he gives life and breath and all things and wants
all men to be saved. Thus, the Church considers all goodness and truth
found in these religions as "a preparation for the Gospel and given
by him who enlightens all men that they may at length have life."332
844 In their religious behavior, however, men also
display the limits and errors that disfigure the image of God in them:
-
Very often, deceived by the Evil One, men have become vain in
their reasonings, and have exchanged the truth of God for a lie, and
served the creature rather than the Creator. Or else, living and
dying in this world without God, they are exposed to ultimate
despair.333
845 To reunite all his children, scattered and led
astray by sin, the Father willed to call the whole of humanity together
into his Son's Church. The Church is the place where humanity must
rediscover its unity and salvation. The Church is "the world
reconciled." She is that bark which "in the full sail of the
Lord's cross, by the breath of the Holy Spirit, navigates safely in this
world." According to another image dear to the Church Fathers, she
is prefigured by Noah's ark, which alone saves from the flood.334
"Outside the Church there is no salvation"
846 How are we to understand this affirmation, often
repeated by the Church Fathers?335 Re-formulated positively,
it means that all salvation comes from Christ the Head through the
Church which is his Body:
-
Basing itself on Scripture and Tradition, the Council teaches that
the Church, a pilgrim now on earth, is necessary for salvation: the
one Christ is the mediator and the way of salvation; he is present
to us in his body which is the Church. He himself explicitly
asserted the necessity of faith and Baptism, and thereby affirmed at
the same time the necessity of the Church which men enter through
Baptism as through a door. Hence they could not be saved who,
knowing that the Catholic Church was founded as necessary by God
through Christ, would refuse either to enter it or to remain in it.336
847 This affirmation is not aimed at those
who, through no fault of their own, do not know Christ and his Church:
-
Those who, through no fault of their own, do not know the Gospel
of Christ or his Church, but who nevertheless seek God with a
sincere heart, and, moved by grace, try in their actions to do his
will as they know it through the dictates of their conscience -
those too may achieve eternal salvation.337
848 "Although in ways known to himself God can
lead those who, through no fault of their own, are ignorant of the
Gospel, to that faith without which it is impossible to please him, the
Church still has the obligation and also the sacred right to evangelize
all men."338
Mission - a requirement of the Church's catholicity
849 The missionary mandate. "Having been
divinely sent to the nations that she might be 'the universal sacrament
of salvation,' the Church, in obedience to the command of her founder
and because it is demanded by her own essential universality, strives to
preach the Gospel to all men":339 "Go therefore and
make disciples of all nations, baptizing them in the name of the Father
and of the Son and of the Holy Spirit, teaching them to observe all that
I have commanded you; and Lo, I am with you always, until the close of
the age."340
850 The origin and purpose of mission. The
Lord's missionary mandate is ultimately grounded in the eternal love of
the Most Holy Trinity: "The Church on earth is by her nature
missionary since, according to the plan of the Father, she has as her
origin the mission of the Son and the Holy Spirit."341
The ultimate purpose of mission is none other than to make men share in
the communion between the Father and the Son in their Spirit of love.342
851 Missionary motivation. It is from God's
love for all men that the Church in every age receives both the
obligation and the vigor of her missionary dynamism, "for the love
of Christ urges us on."343 Indeed, God "desires all
men to be saved and to come to the knowledge of the truth";344
that is, God wills the salvation of everyone through the knowledge of
the truth. Salvation is found in the truth. Those who obey the prompting
of the Spirit of truth are already on the way of salvation. But the
Church, to whom this truth has been entrusted, must go out to meet their
desire, so as to bring them the truth. Because she believes in God's
universal plan of salvation, the Church must be missionary.
852 Missionary paths. The Holy Spirit is the
protagonist, "the principal agent of the whole of the Church's
mission."345 It is he who leads the Church on her
missionary paths. "This mission continues and, in the course of
history, unfolds the mission of Christ, who was sent to evangelize the
poor; so the Church, urged on by the Spirit of Christ, must walk the
road Christ himself walked, a way of poverty and obedience, of service
and self-sacrifice even to death, a death from which he emerged
victorious by his resurrection."346 So it is that
"the blood of martyrs is the seed of Christians."347
853 On her pilgrimage, the Church has also
experienced the "discrepancy existing between the message she
proclaims and the human weakness of those to whom the Gospel has been
entrusted."348 Only by taking the "way of penance
and renewal," the "narrow way of the cross," can the
People of God extend Christ's reign.349 For "just as
Christ carried out the work of redemption in poverty and oppression, so
the Church is called to follow the same path if she is to communicate
the fruits of salvation to men."350
854 By her very mission, "the Church . . . travels the
same journey as all humanity and shares the same earthly lot with the
world: she is to be a leaven and, as it were, the soul of human society
in its renewal by Christ and transformation into the family of
God."351 Missionary endeavor requires patience. It
begins with the proclamation of the Gospel to peoples and groups who do
not yet believe in Christ,352 continues with the
establishment of Christian communities that are "a sign of God's
presence in the world,"353 and leads to the foundation
of local churches.354 It must involve a process of
inculturation if the Gospel is to take flesh in each people's culture.355
There will be times of defeat. "With regard to individuals, groups,
and peoples it is only by degrees that [the Church] touches and
penetrates them and so receives them into a fullness which is
Catholic."356
855 The Church's mission stimulates efforts towards
Christian unity.357 Indeed, "divisions among
Christians prevent the Church from realizing in practice the fullness of
catholicity proper to her in those of her sons who, though joined to her
by Baptism, are yet separated from full communion with her. Furthermore,
the Church herself finds it more difficult to express in actual life her
full catholicity in all its aspects."358
856 The missionary task implies a respectful dialogue
with those who do not yet accept the Gospel.359 Believers can
profit from this dialogue by learning to appreciate better "those
elements of truth and grace which are found among peoples, and which
are, as it were, a secret presence of God."360 They
proclaim the Good News to those who do not know it, in order to
consolidate, complete, and raise up the truth and the goodness that God
has distributed among men and nations, and to purify them from error and
evil "for the glory of God, the confusion of the demon, and the
happiness of man."361
IV. THE CHURCH IS APOSTOLIC
857 The Church is apostolic because she is founded
on the apostles, in three ways:
- she was and remains built on "the foundation of the
Apostles,"362 the witnesses chosen and sent on mission
by Christ himself;363
- with the help of the Spirit dwelling in her, the Church keeps and
hands on the teaching,364 the "good deposit," the
salutary words she has heard from the apostles;365
- she continues to be taught, sanctified, and guided by the apostles
until Christ's return, through their successors in pastoral office: the
college of bishops, "assisted by priests, in union with the
successor of Peter, the Church's supreme pastor":366
-
You are the eternal Shepherd
who never leaves his flock untended.
Through the apostles
you watch over us and protect us always.
You made them shepherds of the flock
to share in the work of your Son. . . .367
The Apostles' mission
858 Jesus is the Father's Emissary. From the
beginning of his ministry, he "called to him those whom he desired;
. . . . And he appointed twelve, whom also he named apostles, to be with
him, and to be sent out to preach."368 From then on,
they would also be his "emissaries" (Greek apostoloi).
In them, Christ continues his own mission: "As the Father has sent
me, even so I send you."369 The apostles' ministry is
the continuation of his mission; Jesus said to the Twelve: "he who
receives you receives me."370
859 Jesus unites them to the mission he received
from the Father. As "the Son can do nothing of his own
accord," but receives everything from the Father who sent him, so
those whom Jesus sends can do nothing apart from him,371 from
whom they received both the mandate for their mission and the power to
carry it out. Christ's apostles knew that they were called by God as
"ministers of a new covenant," "servants of God,"
"ambassadors for Christ," "servants of Christ and
stewards of the mysteries of God."372
860 In the office of the apostles there is one
aspect that cannot be transmitted: to be the chosen witnesses of the
Lord's Resurrection and so the foundation stones of the Church. But
their office also has a permanent aspect. Christ promised to remain with
them always. The divine mission entrusted by Jesus to them "will
continue to the end of time, since the Gospel they handed on is the
lasting source of all life for the Church. Therefore, . . . the apostles
took care to appoint successors."373
The bishops - successors of the apostles
861 "In order that the mission entrusted to
them might be continued after their death, [the apostles] consigned, by
will and testament, as it were, to their immediate collaborators the
duty of completing and consolidating the work they had begun, urging
them to tend to the whole flock, in which the Holy Spirit had appointed
them to shepherd the Church of God. They accordingly designated such men
and then made the ruling that likewise on their death other proven men
should take over their ministry."374
862 "Just as the office which the Lord confided
to Peter alone, as first of the apostles, destined to be transmitted to
his successors, is a permanent one, so also endures the office, which
the apostles received, of shepherding the Church, a charge destined to
be exercised without interruption by the sacred order of bishops."375
Hence the Church teaches that "the bishops have by divine
institution taken the place of the apostles as pastors of the Church, in
such wise that whoever listens to them is listening to Christ and
whoever despises them despises Christ and him who sent Christ."376
The apostolate
863 The whole Church is apostolic, in that she
remains, through the successors of St. Peter and the other apostles, in
communion of faith and life with her origin: and in that she is
"sent out" into the whole world. All members of the Church
share in this mission, though in various ways. "The Christian
vocation is, of its nature, a vocation to the apostolate as well."
Indeed, we call an apostolate "every activity of the Mystical
Body" that aims "to spread the Kingdom of Christ over all the
earth."377
864 "Christ, sent by the Father, is the source
of the Church's whole apostolate"; thus the fruitfulness of
apostolate for ordained ministers as well as for lay people clearly
depends on their vital union with Christ.378 In keeping with
their vocations, the demands of the times and the various gifts of the
Holy Spirit, the apostolate assumes the most varied forms. But charity,
drawn from the Eucharist above all, is always "as it were, the soul
of the whole apostolate."379
865 The Church is ultimately one, holy, catholic,
and apostolic in her deepest and ultimate identity, because it is in
her that "the Kingdom of heaven," the "Reign of
God,"380 already exists and will be fulfilled at the end
of time. The kingdom has come in the person of Christ and grows
mysteriously in the hearts of those incorporated into him, until its
full eschatological manifestation. Then all those he has redeemed and
made "holy and blameless before him in love,"381
will be gathered together as the one People of God, the "Bride of
the Lamb,"382 "the holy city Jerusalem coming down
out of heaven from God, having the glory of God."383 For
"the wall of the city had twelve foundations, and on them the
twelve names of the twelve apostles of the Lamb."384
IN BRIEF
866 The Church is one: she acknowledges one Lord, confesses
one faith, is born of one Baptism, forms only one Body, is given life by
the one Spirit, for the sake of one hope (cf. Eph 4:3-5), at
whose fulfillment all divisions will be overcome.
867 The Church is holy: the Most Holy God is her author;
Christ, her bridegroom, gave himself up to make her holy; the Spirit of
holiness gives her life. Since she still includes sinners, she is
"the sinless one made up of sinners." Her holiness shines in
the saints; in Mary she is already all-holy.
868 The Church is catholic: she proclaims the fullness of the
faith. She bears in herself and administers the totality of the means of
salvation. She is sent out to all peoples. She speaks to all men. She
encompasses all times. She is "missionary of her very nature"
(AG 2).
869 The Church is apostolic. She is built on a lasting
foundation: "the twelve apostles of the Lamb" (Rev 21:14).
She is indestructible (cf. Mt 16:18). She is upheld infallibly in
the truth: Christ governs her through Peter and the other apostles, who
are present in their successors, the Pope and the college of bishops.
870 "The sole Church of Christ which in the Creed we
profess to be one, holy, catholic, and apostolic, . . . subsists in the
Catholic Church, which is governed by the successor of Peter and by the
bishops in communion with him. Nevertheless, many elements of
sanctification and of truth are found outside its visible
confines"(LG 8).
Paragraph 4. Christ's Faithful - Hierarchy, Laity, Consecrated Life
871 "The Christian faithful are those who,
inasmuch as they have been incorporated in Christ through Baptism, have
been constituted as the people of God; for this reason, since they have
become sharers in Christ's priestly, prophetic, and royal office in
their own manner, they are called to exercise the mission which God has
entrusted to the Church to fulfill in the world, in accord with the
condition proper to each one."385
872 "In virtue of their rebirth in Christ there
exists among all the Christian faithful a true equality with regard to
dignity and the activity whereby all cooperate in the building up of the
Body of Christ in accord with each one's own condition and
function."386
873 The very differences which the Lord has willed
to put between the members of his body serve its unity and mission. For
"in the Church there is diversity of ministry but unity of mission.
To the apostles and their successors Christ has entrusted the office of
teaching, sanctifying and governing in his name and by his power. But
the laity are made to share in the priestly, prophetical, and kingly
office of Christ; they have therefore, in the Church and in the world,
their own assignment in the mission of the whole People of God."387
Finally, "from both groups [hierarchy and laity] there exist
Christian faithful who are consecrated to God in their own special
manner and serve the salvific mission of the Church through the
profession of the evangelical counsels."388
I. THE HIERARCHICAL CONSTITUTION OF THE CHURCH
Why the ecclesial ministry?
874 Christ is himself the source of ministry in the
Church. He instituted the Church. He gave her authority and mission,
orientation and goal:
-
In order to shepherd the People of God and to increase its numbers
without cease, Christ the Lord set up in his Church a variety of
offices which aim at the good of the whole body. The holders of
office, who are invested with a sacred power, are, in fact,
dedicated to promoting the interests of their brethren, so that all
who belong to the People of God . . . may attain to salvation.389
875 "How are they to believe in him of whom
they have never heard? And how are they to hear without a preacher? And
how can men preach unless they are sent?"390 No one - no
individual and no community - can proclaim the Gospel to himself:
"Faith comes from what is heard."391 No one can
give himself the mandate and the mission to proclaim the Gospel. The one
sent by the Lord does not speak and act on his own authority, but by
virtue of Christ's authority; not as a member of the community, but
speaking to it in the name of Christ. No one can bestow grace on
himself; it must be given and offered. This fact presupposes ministers
of grace, authorized and empowered by Christ. From him, bishops and
priests receive the mission and faculty ("the sacred power")
to act in persona Christi Capitis; deacons receive the strength
to serve the people of God in the diaconia of the liturgy, word
and charity, in communion with the bishop and his presbyterate. The
ministry in which Christ's emissaries do and give by God's grace what
they cannot do and give by their own powers, is called a
"sacrament" by the Church's tradition. Indeed, the ministry of
the Church is conferred by a special sacrament.
876 Intrinsically linked to the sacramental nature
of ecclesial ministry is its character as service. Entirely
dependent on Christ who gives mission and authority, ministers are truly
"slaves of Christ,"392 in the image of him who
freely took "the form of a slave" for us.393
Because the word and grace of which they are ministers are not their
own, but are given to them by Christ for the sake of others, they must
freely become the slaves of all.394
877 Likewise, it belongs to the sacramental nature
of ecclesial ministry that it have a collegial character. In
fact, from the beginning of his ministry, the Lord Jesus instituted the
Twelve as "the seeds of the new Israel and the beginning of the
sacred hierarchy."395 Chosen together, they were also
sent out together, and their fraternal unity would be at the service of
the fraternal communion of all the faithful: they would reflect and
witness to the communion of the divine persons.396 For this
reason every bishop exercises his ministry from within the episcopal
college, in communion with the bishop of Rome, the successor of St.
Peter and head of the college. So also priests exercise their ministry
from within the presbyterium of the diocese, under the
direction of their bishop.
878 Finally, it belongs to the sacramental nature of
ecclesial ministry that it have a personal character. Although
Christ's ministers act in communion with one another, they also always
act in a personal way. Each one is called personally: "You, follow
me"397 in order to be a personal witness within the
common mission, to bear personal responsibility before him who gives the
mission, acting "in his person" and for other persons: "I
baptize you in the name of the Father and of the Son and of the Holy
Spirit ..."; "I absolve you...."
879 Sacramental ministry in the Church, then, is a
service exercised in the name of Christ. It has a personal character and
a collegial form. This is evidenced by the bonds between the episcopal
college and its head, the successor of St. Peter, and in the
relationship between the bishop's pastoral responsibility for his
particular church and the common solicitude of the episcopal college for
the universal Church.
The episcopal college and its head, the Pope
880 When Christ instituted the Twelve, "he
constituted [them] in the form of a college or permanent assembly, at
the head of which he placed Peter, chosen from among them."398
Just as "by the Lord's institution, St. Peter and the rest of the
apostles constitute a single apostolic college, so in like fashion the
Roman Pontiff, Peter's successor, and the bishops, the successors of the
apostles, are related with and united to one another."399
881 The Lord made Simon alone, whom he named Peter,
the "rock" of his Church. He gave him the keys of his Church
and instituted him shepherd of the whole flock.400 "The
office of binding and loosing which was given to Peter was also assigned
to the college of apostles united to its head."401 This
pastoral office of Peter and the other apostles belongs to the Church's
very foundation and is continued by the bishops under the primacy of the
Pope.
882 The Pope, Bishop of Rome and Peter's
successor, "is the perpetual and visible source and foundation of
the unity both of the bishops and of the whole company of the
faithful."402 "For the Roman Pontiff, by reason of
his office as Vicar of Christ, and as pastor of the entire Church has
full, supreme, and universal power over the whole Church, a power which
he can always exercise unhindered."403
883 "The college or body of bishops
has no authority unless united with the Roman Pontiff, Peter's
successor, as its head." As such, this college has "supreme
and full authority over the universal Church; but this power cannot be
exercised without the agreement of the Roman Pontiff."404
884 "The college of bishops exercises power
over the universal Church in a solemn manner in an ecumenical
council."405 But "there never is an ecumenical
council which is not confirmed or at least recognized as such by Peter's
successor."406
885 "This college, in so far as it is composed
of many members, is the expression of the variety and universality of
the People of God; and of the unity of the flock of Christ, in so far as
it is assembled under one head."407
886 "The individual bishops are the
visible source and foundation of unity in their own particular
Churches."408 As such, they "exercise their
pastoral office over the portion of the People of God assigned to
them,"409 assisted by priests and deacons. But, as a
member of the episcopal college, each bishop shares in the concern for
all the Churches.410 The bishops exercise this care first
"by ruling well their own Churches as portions of the universal
Church," and so contributing "to the welfare of the whole
Mystical Body, which, from another point of view, is a corporate body of
Churches."411 They extend it especially to the poor,412
to those persecuted for the faith, as well as to missionaries who are
working throughout the world.
887 Neighboring particular Churches who share the
same culture form ecclesiastical provinces or larger groupings called
patriarchates or regions.413 The bishops of these groupings
can meet in synods or provincial councils. "In a like fashion, the
episcopal conferences at the present time are in a position to
contribute in many and fruitful ways to the concrete realization of the
collegiate spirit."414
The teaching office
888 Bishops, with priests as co-workers, have as
their first task "to preach the Gospel of God to all men," in
keeping with the Lord's command.415 They are "heralds of
faith, who draw new disciples to Christ; they are authentic
teachers" of the apostolic faith "endowed with the authority
of Christ."416
889 In order to preserve the Church in the purity of
the faith handed on by the apostles, Christ who is the Truth willed to
confer on her a share in his own infallibility. By a "supernatural
sense of faith" the People of God, under the guidance of the
Church's living Magisterium, "unfailingly adheres to this
faith."417
890 The mission of the Magisterium is linked to the
definitive nature of the covenant established by God with his people in
Christ. It is this Magisterium's task to preserve God's people from
deviations and defections and to guarantee them the objective
possibility of professing the true faith without error. Thus, the
pastoral duty of the Magisterium is aimed at seeing to it that the
People of God abides in the truth that liberates. To fulfill this
service, Christ endowed the Church's shepherds with the charism of
infallibility in matters of faith and morals. The exercise of this
charism takes several forms:
891 "The Roman Pontiff, head of the college of
bishops, enjoys this infallibility in virtue of his office, when, as
supreme pastor and teacher of all the faithful - who confirms his
brethren in the faith he proclaims by a definitive act a doctrine
pertaining to faith or morals.... The infallibility promised to the
Church is also present in the body of bishops when, together with
Peter's successor, they exercise the supreme Magisterium," above
all in an Ecumenical Council.418 When the Church through its
supreme Magisterium proposes a doctrine "for belief as being
divinely revealed,"419 and as the teaching of Christ,
the definitions "must be adhered to with the obedience of
faith."420 This infallibility extends as far as the
deposit of divine Revelation itself.421
892 Divine assistance is also given to the
successors of the apostles, teaching in communion with the successor of
Peter, and, in a particular way, to the bishop of Rome, pastor of the
whole Church, when, without arriving at an infallible definition and
without pronouncing in a "definitive manner," they propose in
the exercise of the ordinary Magisterium a teaching that leads to better
understanding of Revelation in matters of faith and morals. To this
ordinary teaching the faithful "are to adhere to it with religious
assent"422 which, though distinct from the assent of
faith, is nonetheless an extension of it.
The sanctifying office
893 The bishop is "the steward of the grace of
the supreme priesthood,"423 especially in the Eucharist
which he offers personally or whose offering he assures through the
priests, his co-workers. The Eucharist is the center of the life of the
particular Church. The bishop and priests sanctify the Church by their
prayer and work, by their ministry of the word and of the sacraments.
They sanctify her by their example, "not as domineering over those
in your charge but being examples to the flock."424
Thus, "together with the flock entrusted to them, they may attain
to eternal life."425
The governing office
894 "The bishops, as vicars and legates of
Christ, govern the particular Churches assigned to them by their
counsels, exhortations, and example, but over and above that also by the
authority and sacred power" which indeed they ought to exercise so
as to edify, in the spirit of service which is that of their Master.426
895 "The power which they exercise personally
in the name of Christ, is proper, ordinary, and immediate, although its
exercise is ultimately controlled by the supreme authority of the
Church."427 But the bishops should not be thought of as
vicars of the Pope. His ordinary and immediate authority over the whole
Church does not annul, but on the contrary confirms and defends that of
the bishops. Their authority must be exercised in communion with the
whole Church under the guidance of the Pope.
896 The Good Shepherd ought to be the model and
"form" of the bishop's pastoral office. Conscious of his own
weaknesses, "the bishop . . . can have compassion for those who are
ignorant and erring. He should not refuse to listen to his subjects
whose welfare he promotes as of his very own children.... The faithful
... should be closely attached to the bishop as the Church is to Jesus
Christ, and as Jesus Christ is to the Father":428
-
Let all follow the bishop, as Jesus Christ follows his Father, and
the college of presbyters as the apostles; respect the deacons as
you do God's law. Let no one do anything concerning the Church in
separation from the bishop.429
II. THE LAY FAITHFUL
897 "The term 'laity' is here understood to
mean all the faithful except those in Holy Orders and those who belong
to a religious state approved by the Church. That is, the faithful, who
by Baptism are incorporated into Christ and integrated into the People
of God, are made sharers in their particular way in the priestly,
prophetic, and kingly office of Christ, and have their own part to play
in the mission of the whole Christian people in the Church and in the
World."430
The vocation of lay people
898 "By reason of their special vocation it
belongs to the laity to seek the kingdom of God by engaging in temporal
affairs and directing them according to God's will.... It pertains to
them in a special way so to illuminate and order all temporal things
with which they are closely associated that these may always be effected
and grow according to Christ and maybe to the glory of the Creator and
Redeemer."431
899 The initiative of lay Christians is necessary
especially when the matter involves discovering or inventing the means
for permeating social, political, and economic realities with the
demands of Christian doctrine and life. This initiative is a normal
element of the life of the Church:
-
Lay believers are in the front line of Church life; for them the
Church is the animating principle of human society. Therefore, they
in particular ought to have an ever-clearer consciousness not only
of belonging to the Church, but of being the Church, that is to say,
the community of the faithful on earth under the leadership of the
Pope, the common Head, and of the bishops in communion with him.
They are the Church.432
900 Since, like all the faithful, lay Christians are
entrusted by God with the apostolate by virtue of their Baptism and
Confirmation, they have the right and duty, individually or grouped in
associations, to work so that the divine message of salvation may be
known and accepted by all men throughout the earth. This duty is the
more pressing when it is only through them that men can hear the Gospel
and know Christ. Their activity in ecclesial communities is so necessary
that, for the most part, the apostolate of the pastors cannot be fully
effective without it.433
The participation of lay people in Christ's priestly office
901 "Hence the laity, dedicated as they are to
Christ and anointed by the Holy Spirit, are marvelously called and
prepared so that even richer fruits of the Spirit maybe produced in
them. For all their works, prayers, and apostolic undertakings, family
and married life, daily work, relaxation of mind and body, if they are
accomplished in the Spirit - indeed even the hardships of life if
patiently born - all these become spiritual sacrifices acceptable to God
through Jesus Christ. In the celebration of the Eucharist these may most
fittingly be offered to the Father along with the body of the Lord. And
so, worshipping everywhere by their holy actions, the laity consecrate
the world itself to God, everywhere offering worship by the holiness of
their lives."434
902 In a very special way, parents share in the
office of sanctifying "by leading a conjugal life in the Christian
spirit and by seeing to the Christian education of their children."435
903 Lay people who possess the required qualities
can be admitted permanently to the ministries of lector and acolyte.436
When the necessity of the Church warrants it and when ministers are
lacking, lay persons, even if they are not lectors or acolytes, can also
supply for certain of their offices, namely, to exercise the ministry of
the word, to preside over liturgical prayers, to confer Baptism, and to
distribute Holy Communion in accord with the prescriptions of law."437
Participation in Christ's prophetic office
904 "Christ . . . fulfills this prophetic
office, not only by the hierarchy . . . but also by the laity. He
accordingly both establishes them as witnesses and provides them with
the sense of the faith [sensus fidei] and the grace of the
word"438
-
To teach in order to lead others to faith is the task of every
preacher and of each believer.439
905 Lay people also fulfill their prophetic mission
by evangelization, "that is, the proclamation of Christ by word and
the testimony of life." For lay people, "this evangelization .
. . acquires a specific property and peculiar efficacy because it is
accomplished in the ordinary circumstances of the world."440
-
This witness of life, however, is not the sole element in the
apostolate; the true apostle is on the lookout for occasions of
announcing Christ by word, either to unbelievers . . . or to the
faithful.441
906 Lay people who are capable and trained may also
collaborate in catechetical formation, in teaching the sacred sciences,
and in use of the communications media.442
907 "In accord with the knowledge, competence,
and preeminence which they possess, [lay people] have the right and even
at times a duty to manifest to the sacred pastors their opinion on
matters which pertain to the good of the Church, and they have a right
to make their opinion known to the other Christian faithful, with due
regard to the integrity of faith and morals and reverence toward their
pastors, and with consideration for the common good and the dignity of
persons."443
Participation in Christ's kingly office
908 By his obedience unto death,444
Christ communicated to his disciples the gift of royal freedom, so that
they might "by the self-abnegation of a holy life, overcome the
reign of sin in themselves":445
-
That man is rightly called a king who makes his own body an
obedient subject and, by governing himself with suitable rigor,
refuses to let his passions breed rebellion in his soul, for he
exercises a kind of royal power over himself. And because he knows
how to rule his own person as king, so too does he sit as its judge.
He will not let himself be imprisoned by sin, or thrown headlong
into wickedness.446
909 "Moreover, by uniting their forces let the
laity so remedy the institutions and conditions of the world when the
latter are an inducement to sin, that these may be conformed to the
norms of justice, favoring rather than hindering the practice of virtue.
By so doing they will impregnate culture and human works with a moral
value."447
910 "The laity can also feel called, or be in
fact called, to cooperate with their pastors in the service of the
ecclesial community, for the sake of its growth and life. This can be
done through the exercise of different kinds of ministries according to
the grace and charisms which the Lord has been pleased to bestow on
them."448
911 In the Church, "lay members of the
Christian faithful can cooperate in the exercise of this power [of
governance] in accord with the norm of law."449 And so
the Church provides for their presence at particular councils, diocesan
synods, pastoral councils; the exercise of the pastoral care of a
parish, collaboration in finance committees, and participation in
ecclesiastical tribunals, etc.450
912 The faithful should "distinguish carefully
between the rights and the duties which they have as belonging to the
Church and those which fall to them as members of the human society.
They will strive to unite the two harmoniously, remembering that in
every temporal affair they are to be guided by a Christian conscience,
since no human activity, even of the temporal order, can be withdrawn
from God's dominion."451
913 "Thus, every person, through these gifts
given to him, is at once the witness and the living instrument of the
mission of the Church itself 'according to the measure of Christ's
bestowal."'452
III. THE CONSECRATED LIFE
914 "The state of life which is constituted by
the profession of the evangelical counsels, while not entering into the
hierarchical structure of the Church, belongs undeniably to her life and
holiness."453
Evangelical counsels, consecrated life
915 Christ proposes the evangelical counsels, in
their great variety, to every disciple. The perfection of charity, to
which all the faithful are called, entails for those who freely follow
the call to consecrated life the obligation of practicing chastity in
celibacy for the sake of the Kingdom, poverty and obedience. It is the
profession of these counsels, within a permanent state of life
recognized by the Church, that characterizes the life consecrated to
God.454
916 The state of consecrated life is thus one way of
experiencing a "more intimate" consecration, rooted in Baptism
and dedicated totally to God.455 In the consecrated life,
Christ's faithful, moved by the Holy Spirit, propose to follow Christ
more nearly, to give themselves to God who is loved above all and,
pursuing the perfection of charity in the service of the Kingdom, to
signify and proclaim in the Church the glory of the world to come.456
One great tree, with many branches
917 "From the God-given seed of the counsels a
wonderful and wide-spreading tree has grown up in the field of the Lord,
branching out into various forms of the religious life lived in solitude
or in community. Different religious families have come into existence
in which spiritual resources are multiplied for the progress in holiness
of their members and for the good of the entire Body of Christ."457
918 From the very beginning of the Church there were
men and women who set out to follow Christ with greater liberty, and to
imitate him more closely, by practicing the evangelical counsels. They
led lives dedicated to God, each in his own way. Many of them, under the
inspiration of the Holy Spirit, became hermits or founded religious
families. These the Church, by virtue of her authority, gladly accepted
and approved.458
919 Bishops will always strive to discern new gifts
of consecrated life granted to the Church by the Holy Spirit; the
approval of new forms of consecrated life is reserved to the Apostolic
See.459
The eremitic life
920 Without always professing the three evangelical
counsels publicly, hermits "devote their life to the praise of God
and salvation of the world through a stricter separation from the world,
the silence of solitude and assiduous prayer and penance."460
921 They manifest to everyone the interior aspect of
the mystery of the Church, that is, personal intimacy with Christ.
Hidden from the eyes of men, the life of the hermit is a silent
preaching of the Lord, to whom he has surrendered his life simply
because he is everything to him. Here is a particular call to find in
the desert, in the thick of spiritual battle, the glory of the Crucified
One.
Consecrated virgins and widows
922 From apostolic times Christian virgins460a
and widows460b, called by the Lord to cling only to him with
greater freedom of heart, body, and spirit, have decided with the
Church's approval to live in the respective status of virginity or
perpetual chastity "for the sake of the Kingdom of heaven."461
923 "Virgins who, committed to the holy plan of
following Christ more closely, are consecrated to God by the diocesan
bishop according to the approved liturgical rite, are betrothed
mystically to Christ, the Son of God, and are dedicated to the service
of the Church."462 By this solemn rite (Consecratio
virginum), the virgin is "constituted . . . a sacred person, a
transcendent sign of the Church's love for Christ, and an eschatological
image of this heavenly Bride of Christ and of the life to come."463
924 "As with other forms of consecrated
life," the order of virgins establishes the woman living in the
world (or the nun) in prayer, penance, service of her brethren, and
apostolic activity, according to the state of life and spiritual gifts
given to her.464 Consecrated virgins can form themselves into
associations to observe their commitment more faithfully.465
Religious life
925 Religious life was born in the East during the
first centuries of Christianity. Lived within institutes canonically
erected by the Church, it is distinguished from other forms of
consecrated life by its liturgical character, public profession of the
evangelical counsels, fraternal life led in common, and witness given to
the union of Christ with the Church.466
926 Religious life derives from the mystery of the
Church. It is a gift she has received from her Lord, a gift she offers
as a stable way of life to the faithful called by God to profess the
counsels. Thus, the Church can both show forth Christ and acknowledge
herself to be the Savior's bride. Religious life in its various forms is
called to signify the very charity of God in the language of our time.
927 All religious, whether exempt or not, take their
place among the collaborators of the diocesan bishop in his pastoral
duty.467 From the outset of the work of evangelization, the
missionary "planting" and expansion of the Church require the
presence of the religious life in all its forms.468
"History witnesses to the outstanding service rendered by religious
families in the propagation of the faith and in the formation of new
Churches: from the ancient monastic institutions to the medieval orders,
all the way to the more recent congregations."469
Secular institutes
928 "A secular institute is an institute of
consecrated life in which the Christian faithful living in the world
strive for the perfection of charity and work for the sanctification of
the world especially from within."470
929 By a "life perfectly and entirely
consecrated to [such] sanctification," the members of these
institutes share in the Church's task of evangelization, "in the
world and from within the world," where their presence acts as
"leaven in the world."471 "Their witness of a
Christian life" aims "to order temporal things according to
God and inform the world with the power of the gospel." They commit
themselves to the evangelical counsels by sacred bonds and observe among
themselves the communion and fellowship appropriate to their
"particular secular way of life."472
Societies of apostolic life
930 Alongside the different forms of consecrated
life are "societies of apostolic life whose members without
religious vows pursue the particular apostolic purpose of their society,
and lead a life as brothers or sisters in common according to a
particular manner of life, strive for the perfection of charity through
the observance of the constitutions. Among these there are societies in
which the members embrace the evangelical counsels" according to
their constitutions.473
Consecration and mission: proclaiming the King who is coming
931 Already dedicated to him through Baptism, the
person who surrenders himself to the God he loves above all else thereby
consecrates himself more intimately to God's service and to the good of
the Church. By this state of life consecrated to God, the Church
manifests Christ and shows us how the Holy Spirit acts so wonderfully in
her. And so the first mission of those who profess the evangelical
counsels is to live out their consecration. Moreover, "since
members of institutes of consecrated life dedicate themselves through
their consecration to the service of the Church they are obliged in a
special manner to engage in missionary work, in accord with the
character of the institute."474
932 In the Church, which is like the sacrament- the
sign and instrument - of God's own life, the consecrated life is seen as
a special sign of the mystery of redemption. To follow and imitate
Christ more nearly and to manifest more clearly his self- emptying is to
be more deeply present to one's contemporaries, in the heart of Christ.
For those who are on this "narrower" path encourage their
brethren by their example, and bear striking witness "that the
world cannot be transfigured and offered to God without the spirit of
the beatitudes."475
933 Whether their witness is public, as in the
religious state, or less public, or even secret, Christ's coming remains
for all those consecrated both the origin and rising sun of their life:
-
For the People of God has here no lasting city, . . . [and this
state] reveals more clearly to all believers the heavenly goods
which are already present in this age, witnessing to the new and
eternal life which we have acquired through the redemptive work of
Christ and preluding our future resurrection and the glory of the
heavenly kingdom.476
IN BRIEF
934 "Among the Christian faithful by divine
institution there exist in the Church sacred ministers, who are also
called clerics in law, and other Christian faithful who are also called
laity." In both groups there are those Christian faithful who,
professing the evangelical counsels, are consecrated to God and so serve
the Church's saving mission (cf. CIC, can. 207 # 1, 2).
935 To proclaim the faith and to plant his reign,
Christ sends his apostles and their successors. He gives them a share in
his own mission. From him they receive the power to act in his person.
936 The Lord made St. Peter the visible foundation
of his Church. He entrusted the keys of the Church to him. The bishop of
the Church of Rome, successor to St. Peter, is "head of the college
of bishops, the Vicar of Christ and Pastor of the universal Church on
earth" (CIC, can. 331).
937 The Pope enjoys, by divine institution,
"supreme, full, immediate, and universal power in the care of
souls" (CD 2).
938 The Bishops, established by the Holy Spirit,
succeed the apostles. They are "the visible source and foundation
of unity in their own particular Churches" (LG 23).
939 Helped by the priests, their co-workers, and by
the deacons, the bishops have the duty of authentically teaching the
faith, celebrating divine worship, above all the Eucharist, and guiding
their Churches as true pastors. Their responsibility also includes
concern for all the Churches, with and under the Pope.
940 "The characteristic of the lay state being
a life led in the midst of the world and of secular affairs, lay people
are called by God to make of their apostolate, through the vigor of
their Christian spirit, a leaven in the world" (AA 2 # 2).
941 Lay people share in Christ's priesthood: ever
more united with him, they exhibit the grace of Baptism and Confirmation
in all dimensions of their personal family, social and ecclesial lives,
and so fulfill the call to holiness addressed to all the baptized.
942 By virtue of their prophetic mission, lay people
"are called . . . to be witnesses to Christ in all circumstances
and at the very heart of the community of mankind" (GS 43
# 4).
943 By virtue of their kingly mission, lay people
have the power to uproot the rule of sin within themselves and in the
world, by their self-denial and holiness of life (cf. LG 36).
944 The life consecrated to God is characterized by
the public profession of the evangelical counsels of poverty, chastity,
and obedience, in a stable state of life recognized by the Church.
945 Already destined for him through Baptism, the
person who surrenders himself to the God he loves above all else thereby
consecrates himself more intimately to God's service and to the good of
the whole Church.
Paragraph 5. The Communion of Saints
946 After confessing "the holy catholic
Church," the Apostles' Creed adds "the communion of
saints." In a certain sense this article is a further explanation
of the preceding: "What is the Church if not the assembly of all
the saints?"477 The communion of saints is the Church.
947 "Since all the faithful form one body, the
good of each is communicated to the others.... We must therefore believe
that there exists a communion of goods in the Church. But the most
important member is Christ, since he is the head.... Therefore, the
riches of Christ are communicated to all the members, through the
sacraments."478 "As this Church is governed by one
and the same Spirit, all the goods she has received necessarily become a
common fund."479
948 The term "communion of saints"
therefore has two closely linked meanings: communion in holy things (sancta)"
and "among holy persons (sancti)."
-
Sancta sanctis! ("God's holy gifts for God's holy
people") is proclaimed by the celebrant in most Eastern
liturgies during the elevation of the holy Gifts before the
distribution of communion. The faithful (sancti) are fed by
Christ's holy body and blood (sancta) to grow in the
communion of the Holy Spirit (koinonia) and to communicate
it to the world.
I. COMMUNION IN SPIRITUAL GOODS
949 In the primitive community of Jerusalem, the
disciples "devoted themselves to the apostles' teaching and
fellowship, to the breaking of the bread and the prayers."480
Communion in the faith. The faith of the faithful is the
faith of the Church, received from the apostles. Faith is a treasure of
life which is enriched by being shared.
950 Communion of the sacraments. "The
fruit of all the sacraments belongs to all the faithful. All the
sacraments are sacred links uniting the faithful with one another and
binding them to Jesus Christ, and above all Baptism, the gate by which
we enter into the Church. The communion of saints must be understood as
the communion of the sacraments.... The name 'communion' can be applied
to all of them, for they unite us to God.... But this name is better
suited to the Eucharist than to any other, because it is primarily the
Eucharist that brings this communion about."481
951 Communion of charisms. Within the
communion of the Church, the Holy Spirit "distributes special
graces among the faithful of every rank" for the building up of the
Church.482 Now, "to each is given the manifestation of
the Spirit for the common good."483
952 "They had everything in common."484
"Everything the true Christian has is to be regarded as a good
possessed in common with everyone else. All Christians should be ready
and eager to come to the help of the needy . . . and of their neighbors
in want."485 A Christian is a steward of the Lord's
goods.486
953 Communion in charity. In the sanctorum
communio, "None of us lives to himself, and none of us dies to
himself."487 "If one member suffers, all suffer
together; if one member is honored, all rejoice together. Now you are
the body of Christ and individually members of it."488
"Charity does not insist on its own way."489 In
this solidarity with all men, living or dead, which is founded on the
communion of saints, the least of our acts done in charity redounds to
the profit of all. Every sin harms this communion.
II. THE COMMUNION OF THE CHURCH OF HEAVEN AND EARTH
954 The three states of the Church.
"When the Lord comes in glory, and all his angels with him, death
will be no more and all things will be subject to him. But at the
present time some of his disciples are pilgrims on earth. Others have
died and are being purified, while still others are in glory,
contemplating 'in full light, God himself triune and one, exactly as he
is"':490
-
All of us, however, in varying degrees and in different ways share
in the same charity towards God and our neighbors, and we all sing
the one hymn of glory to our God. All, indeed, who are of Christ and
who have his Spirit form one Church and in Christ cleave together.491
955 "So it is that the union of the wayfarers
with the brethren who sleep in the peace of Christ is in no way
interrupted, but on the contrary, according to the constant faith of the
Church, this union is reinforced by an exchange of spiritual
goods."492
956 The intercession of the saints.
"Being more closely united to Christ, those who dwell in heaven fix
the whole Church more firmly in holiness.... They do not cease to
intercede with the Father for us, as they proffer the merits which they
acquired on earth through the one mediator between God and men, Christ
Jesus.... So by their fraternal concern is our weakness greatly
helped."493
-
Do not weep, for I shall be more useful to you after my death and
I shall help you then more effectively than during my life.494
I want to spend my heaven in doing good on earth.495
957 Communion with the saints. "It is
not merely by the title of example that we cherish the memory of those
in heaven; we seek, rather, that by this devotion to the exercise of
fraternal charity the union of the whole Church in the Spirit may be
strengthened. Exactly as Christian communion among our fellow pilgrims
brings us closer to Christ, so our communion with the saints joins us to
Christ, from whom as from its fountain and head issues all grace, and
the life of the People of God itself"496:
-
We worship Christ as God's Son; we love the martyrs as the Lord's
disciples and imitators, and rightly so because of their matchless
devotion towards their king and master. May we also be their
companions and fellow disciples!497
958 Communion with the dead. "In full
consciousness of this communion of the whole Mystical Body of Jesus
Christ, the Church in its pilgrim members, from the very earliest days
of the Christian religion, has honored with great respect the memory of
the dead; and 'because it is a holy and a wholesome thought to pray for
the dead that they may be loosed from their sins' she offers her
suffrages for them."498 Our prayer for them is capable
not only of helping them, but also of making their intercession for us
effective.
959 In the one family of God. "For if
we continue to love one another and to join in praising the Most Holy
Trinity - all of us who are sons of God and form one family in Christ -
we will be faithful to the deepest vocation of the Church."499
IN BRIEF
960 The Church is a "communion of saints":
this expression refers first to the "holy things" (sancta),
above all the Eucharist, by which "the unity of believers, who form
one body in Christ, is both represented and brought about" (LG 3).
961 The term "communion of saints" refers
also to the communion of "holy persons" (sancti) in
Christ who "died for all," so that what each one does or
suffers in and for Christ bears fruit for all.
962 "We believe in the communion of all the
faithful of Christ, those who are pilgrims on earth, the dead who are
being purified, and the blessed in heaven, all together forming one
Church; and we believe that in this communion, the merciful love of God
and his saints is always [attentive] to our prayers" (Paul VI, CPG
# 30).
Paragraph 6. Mary - Mother of Christ, Mother of the Church
963 Since the Virgin Mary's role in the mystery of
Christ and the Spirit has been treated, it is fitting now to consider
her place in the mystery of the Church. "The Virgin Mary . . . is
acknowledged and honored as being truly the Mother of God and of the
redeemer.... She is 'clearly the mother of the members of Christ' . . .
since she has by her charity joined in bringing about the birth of
believers in the Church, who are members of its head."500
"Mary, Mother of Christ, Mother of the Church."501
I. MARY'S MOTHERHOOD WITH REGARD TO THE CHURCH
Wholly united with her Son . . .
964 Mary's role in the Church is inseparable from
her union with Christ and flows directly from it. "This union of
the mother with the Son in the work of salvation is made manifest from
the time of Christ's virginal conception up to his death";502
it is made manifest above all at the hour of his Passion:
-
Thus the Blessed Virgin advanced in her pilgrimage of faith, and
faithfully persevered in her union with her Son unto the cross.
There she stood, in keeping with the divine plan, enduring with her
only begotten Son the intensity of his suffering, joining herself
with his sacrifice in her mother's heart, and lovingly consenting to
the immolation of this victim, born of her: to be given, by the same
Christ Jesus dying on the cross, as a mother to his disciple, with
these words: "Woman, behold your son."503
965 After her Son's Ascension, Mary "aided the
beginnings of the Church by her prayers."504 In her
association with the apostles and several women, "we also see Mary
by her prayers imploring the gift of the Spirit, who had already
overshadowed her in the Annunciation."505
. . . also in her Assumption
966 "Finally the Immaculate Virgin, preserved
free from all stain of original sin, when the course of her earthly life
was finished, was taken up body and soul into heavenly glory, and
exalted by the Lord as Queen over all things, so that she might be the
more fully conformed to her Son, the Lord of lords and conqueror of sin
and death."506 The Assumption of the Blessed Virgin is a
singular participation in her Son's Resurrection and an anticipation of
the resurrection of other Christians:
-
In giving birth you kept your virginity; in your Dormition you did
not leave the world, O Mother of God, but were joined to the source
of Life. You conceived the living God and, by your prayers, will
deliver our souls from death.507
. . . she is our Mother in the order of grace
967 By her complete adherence to the Father's will,
to his Son's redemptive work, and to every prompting of the Holy Spirit,
the Virgin Mary is the Church's model of faith and charity. Thus she is
a "preeminent and . . . wholly unique member of the Church";
indeed, she is the "exemplary realization" (typus)508
of the Church.
968 Her role in relation to the Church and to all
humanity goes still further. "In a wholly singular way she
cooperated by her obedience, faith, hope, and burning charity in the
Savior's work of restoring supernatural life to souls. For this reason
she is a mother to us in the order of grace."509
969 "This motherhood of Mary in the order of
grace continues uninterruptedly from the consent which she loyally gave
at the Annunciation and which she sustained without wavering beneath the
cross, until the eternal fulfillment of all the elect. Taken up to
heaven she did not lay aside this saving office but by her manifold
intercession continues to bring us the gifts of eternal salvation ....
Therefore the Blessed Virgin is invoked in the Church under the titles
of Advocate, Helper, Benefactress, and Mediatrix."510
970 "Mary's function as mother of men in no way
obscures or diminishes this unique mediation of Christ, but rather shows
its power. But the Blessed Virgin's salutary influence on men . . .
flows forth from the superabundance of the merits of Christ, rests on
his mediation, depends entirely on it, and draws all its power from
it."511 "No creature could ever be counted along
with the Incarnate Word and Redeemer; but just as the priesthood of
Christ is shared in various ways both by his ministers and the faithful,
and as the one goodness of God is radiated in different ways among his
creatures, so also the unique mediation of the Redeemer does not exclude
but rather gives rise to a manifold cooperation which is but a sharing
in this one source."512
II. DEVOTION TO THE BLESSED VIRGIN
971 "All generations will call me blessed":
"The Church's devotion to the Blessed Virgin is intrinsic to
Christian worship."513 The Church rightly honors
"the Blessed Virgin with special devotion. From the most ancient
times the Blessed Virgin has been honored with the title of 'Mother of
God,' to whose protection the faithful fly in all their dangers and
needs. . . . This very special devotion . . . differs essentially from
the adoration which is given to the incarnate Word and equally to the
Father and the Holy Spirit, and greatly fosters this adoration."514
The liturgical feasts dedicated to the Mother of God and Marian prayer,
such as the rosary, an "epitome of the whole Gospel," express
this devotion to the Virgin Mary.515
III. MARY - ESCHATOLOGICAL ICON OF THE CHURCH
972 After speaking of the Church, her origin,
mission, and destiny, we can find no better way to conclude than by
looking to Mary. In her we contemplate what the Church already is in her
mystery on her own "pilgrimage of faith," and what she will be
in the homeland at the end of her journey. There, "in the glory of
the Most Holy and Undivided Trinity," "in the communion of all
the saints,"516 the Church is awaited by the one she
venerates as Mother of her Lord and as her own mother.
-
In the meantime the Mother of Jesus, in the glory which she
possesses in body and soul in heaven, is the image and beginning of
the Church as it is to be perfected in the world to come. Likewise
she shines forth on earth until the day of the Lord shall come, a
sign of certain hope and comfort to the pilgrim People of God.517
IN BRIEF
973 By pronouncing her "fiat" at the
Annunciation and giving her consent to the Incarnation, Mary was already
collaborating with the whole work her Son was to accomplish. She is
mother wherever he is Savior and head of the Mystical Body.
974 The Most Blessed Virgin Mary, when the course of
her earthly life was completed, was taken up body and soul into the
glory of heaven, where she already shares in the glory of her Son's
Resurrection, anticipating the resurrection of all members of his Body.
975 "We believe that the Holy Mother of God,
the new Eve, Mother of the Church, continues in heaven to exercise her
maternal role on behalf of the members of Christ" (Paul VI, CPG
# 15).
ARTICLE 10
"I BELIEVE IN THE FORGIVENESS OF SINS"
976 The Apostle's Creed associates faith in the forgiveness of
sins not only with faith in the Holy Spirit, but also with faith in the
Church and in the communion of saints. It was when he gave the Holy
Spirit to his apostles that the risen Christ conferred on them his own
divine power to forgive sins: "Receive the Holy Spirit. If you
forgive the sins of any, they are forgiven; if you retain the sins of
any, they are retained."520
-
(Part Two of the catechism will deal
explicitly with the forgiveness of sins through Baptism, the
sacrament of Penance, and the other sacraments, especially the
Eucharist. Here it will suffice to suggest some basic facts
briefly.)
I. ONE BAPTISM FOR THE FORGIVENESS OF SINS
977 Our Lord tied the forgiveness of sins to faith and
Baptism: "Go into all the world and preach the gospel to the whole
creation. He who believes and is baptized will be saved."521
Baptism is the first and chief sacrament of forgiveness of sins because
it unites us with Christ, who died for our sins and rose for our
justification, so that "we too might walk in newness of life."522
978 "When we made our first profession of faith while
receiving the holy Baptism that cleansed us, the forgiveness we received
then was so full and complete that there remained in us absolutely
nothing left to efface, neither original sin nor offenses committed by
our own will, nor was there left any penalty to suffer in order to
expiate them. . . . Yet the grace of Baptism delivers no one
from all the weakness of nature. On the contrary, we must still combat
the movements of concupiscence that never cease leading us into evil
"523
979 In this battle against our inclination towards evil, who
could be brave and watchful enough to escape every wound of sin?
"If the Church has the power to forgive sins, then Baptism cannot
be her only means of using the keys of the Kingdom of heaven received
from Jesus Christ. The Church must be able to forgive all penitents
their offenses, even if they should sin until the last moment of their
lives."524
980 It is through the sacrament of Penance that the baptized
can be reconciled with God and with the Church:
-
Penance has rightly been called by the holy
Fathers "a laborious kind of baptism." This sacrament of
Penance is necessary for salvation for those who have fallen after
Baptism, just as Baptism is necessary for salvation for those who
have not yet been reborn.525
II. THE POWER OF THE KEYS
981 After his Resurrection, Christ sent his apostles "so
that repentance and forgiveness of sins should be preached in his name
to all nations."526 The apostles and their successors
carry out this "ministry of reconciliation," not only by
announcing to men God's forgiveness merited for us by Christ, and
calling them to conversion and faith; but also by communicating to them
the forgiveness of sins in Baptism, and reconciling them with God and
with the Church through the power of the keys, received from Christ:527
-
[The Church] has received the keys of the
Kingdom of heaven so that, in her, sins may be forgiven through
Christ's blood and the Holy Spirit's action. In this Church, the
soul dead through sin comes back to life in order to live with
Christ, whose grace has saved us.528
982 There is no offense, however serious, that the Church
cannot forgive. "There is no one, however wicked and guilty, who
may not confidently hope for forgiveness, provided his repentance is
honest.529 Christ who died for all men desires that in his
Church the gates of forgiveness should always be open to anyone who
turns away from sin.530
983 Catechesis strives to awaken and nourish in the faithful
faith in the incomparable greatness of the risen Christ's gift to his
Church: the mission and the power to forgive sins through the ministry
of the apostles and their successors:
-
The Lord wills that his disciples possess a
tremendous power: that his lowly servants accomplish in his name all
that he did when he was on earth.531
Priests have received from God a power that he has given neither
to angels nor to archangels . . . . God above confirms
what priests do here below.532
Were there no forgiveness of sins in the Church, there would be
no hope of life to come or eternal liberation. Let us thank God who
has given his Church such a gift.533
IN BRIEF
984 The Creed links "the forgiveness of sins" with
its profession of faith in the Holy Spirit, for the risen Christ
entrusted to the apostles the power to forgive sins when he gave them
the Holy Spirit.
985 Baptism is the first and chief sacrament of the
forgiveness of sins: it unites us to Christ, who died and rose, and
gives us the Holy Spirit.
986 By Christ's will, the Church possesses the power to
forgive the sins of the baptized and exercises it through bishops and
priests normally in the sacrament of Penance.
987 "In the forgiveness of sins, both priests and
sacraments are instruments which our Lord Jesus Christ, the only author
and liberal giver of salvation, wills to use in order to efface our sins
and give us the grace of justification" (Roman Catechism, I,
11, 6).
ARTICLE 11
"I BELIEVE IN THE RESURRECTION OF THE BODY"
988 The Christian Creed - the
profession of our faith in God, the Father, the Son, and the Holy
Spirit, and in God's creative, saving, and sanctifying action -
culminates in the proclamation of the resurrection of the dead on the
last day and in life everlasting.
989 We firmly believe, and hence we
hope that, just as Christ is truly risen from the dead and lives for
ever, so after death the righteous will live for ever with the risen
Christ and he will raise them up on the last day.534 Our
resurrection, like his own, will be the work of the Most Holy Trinity:
-
If the Spirit of him who raised Jesus
from the dead dwells in you, he who raised Christ Jesus from the
dead will give life to your mortal bodies also through his Spirit
who dwells in you.535
990 The term "flesh"
refers to man in his state of weakness and mortality.536 The
"resurrection of the flesh" (the literal formulation of the
Apostles' Creed) means not only that the immortal soul will live on
after death, but that even our "mortal body" will come to life
again.537
991 Belief in the resurrection of
the dead has been an essential element of the Christian faith from its
beginnings. "The confidence of Christians is the resurrection of
the dead; believing this we live."538
-
How can some of you say that there is
no resurrection of the dead? But if there is no resurrection of the
dead, then Christ has not been raised; if Christ has not been
raised, then our preaching is in vain and your faith is in vain. . .
. But in fact Christ has been raised from the dead, the first fruits
of those who have fallen asleep.539
I. CHRIST'S RESURRECTION AND OURS
The progressive revelation of the
Resurrection
992 God revealed the resurrection of
the dead to his people progressively. Hope in the bodily resurrection of
the dead established itself as a consequence intrinsic to faith in God
as creator of the whole man, soul and body. The creator of heaven and
earth is also the one who faithfully maintains his covenant with Abraham
and his posterity. It was in this double perspective that faith in the
resurrection came to be expressed. In their trials, the Maccabean
martyrs confessed:
-
The King of the universe will raise us
up to an everlasting renewal of life, because we have died for his
laws.540 One cannot but choose to die at the hands of men
and to cherish the hope that God gives of being raised again by him.541
993 The Pharisees and many of the
Lord's contemporaries hoped for the resurrection. Jesus teaches it
firmly. To the Sadducees who deny it he answers, "Is not this why
you are wrong, that you know neither the scriptures nor the power of
God?"542 Faith in the resurrection rests on faith in God
who "is not God of the dead, but of the living."543
994 But there is more. Jesus links
faith in the resurrection to his own person: "I am the Resurrection
and the life."544 It is Jesus himself who on the last
day will raise up those who have believed in him, who have eaten his
body and drunk his blood.545 Already now in this present life
he gives a sign and pledge of this by restoring some of the dead to
life,546 announcing thereby his own Resurrection, though it
was to be of another order. He speaks of this unique event as the
"sign of Jonah,"547 the sign of the temple: he
announces that he will be put to death but rise thereafter on the third
day.548
995 To be a witness to Christ is to
be a "witness to his Resurrection," to "[have eaten and
drunk] with him after he rose from the dead."549
Encounters with the risen Christ characterize the Christian hope of
resurrection. We shall rise like Christ, with him, and through him.
996 From the beginning, Christian
faith in the resurrection has met with incomprehension and opposition.550
"On no point does the Christian faith encounter more opposition
than on the resurrection of the body."551 It is very
commonly accepted that the life of the human person continues in a
spiritual fashion after death. But how can we believe that this body, so
clearly mortal, could rise to everlasting life?
How do the dead rise?
997 What is "rising"?
In death, the separation of the soul from the body, the human body
decays and the soul goes to meet God, while awaiting its reunion with
its glorified body. God, in his almighty power, will definitively grant
incorruptible life to our bodies by reuniting them with our souls,
through the power of Jesus' Resurrection.
998 Who will rise? All the
dead will rise, "those who have done good, to the resurrection of
life, and those who have done evil, to the resurrection of
judgment."552
999 How? Christ is raised
with his own body: "See my hands and my feet, that it is I
myself";553 but he did not return to an earthly life.
So, in him, "all of them will rise again with their own bodies
which they now bear," but Christ "will change our lowly body
to be like his glorious body," into a "spiritual body":554
-
But someone will ask, "How are the
dead raised? With what kind of body do they come?" You foolish
man! What you sow does not come to life unless it dies. And what you
sow is not the body which is to be, but a bare kernel. . . . What is
sown is perishable, what is raised is imperishable. . . . The dead
will be raised imperishable. . . . For this perishable nature must
put on the imperishable, and this mortal nature must put on
immortality.555
1000 This "how" exceeds
our imagination and understanding; it is accessible only to faith. Yet
our participation in the Eucharist already gives us a foretaste of
Christ's transfiguration of our bodies:
-
Just as bread that comes from the
earth, after God's blessing has been invoked upon it, is no longer
ordinary bread, but Eucharist, formed of two things, the one earthly
and the other heavenly: so too our bodies, which partake of the
Eucharist, are no longer corruptible, but possess the hope of
resurrection.556
1001 When? Definitively "at the
last day," "at the end of the world."557
Indeed, the resurrection of the dead is closely associated with Christ's
Parousia:
-
For the Lord himself will descend from
heaven, with a cry of command, with the archangel's call, and with
the sound of the trumpet of God. And the dead in Christ will rise
first.558
Risen with Christ
1002 Christ will raise us up
"on the last day"; but it is also true that, in a certain way,
we have already risen with Christ. For, by virtue of the Holy Spirit,
Christian life is already now on earth a participation in the death and
Resurrection of Christ:
-
And you were buried with him in
Baptism, in which you were also raised with him through faith in the
working of God, who raised him from the dead . . . . If then you
have been raised with Christ, seek the things that are above, where
Christ is, seated at the right hand of God.559
1003 United with Christ by Baptism,
believers already truly participate in the heavenly life of the risen
Christ, but this life remains "hidden with Christ in God."560
The Father has already "raised us up with him, and made us sit with
him in the heavenly places in Christ Jesus."561
Nourished with his body in the Eucharist, we already belong to the Body
of Christ. When we rise on the last day we "also will appear with
him in glory."562
1004 In expectation of that day, the
believer's body and soul already participate in the dignity of belonging
to Christ. This dignity entails the demand that he should treat with
respect his own body, but also the body of every other person,
especially the suffering:
-
The body [is meant] for the Lord, and
the Lord for the body. And God raised the Lord and will also raise
us up by his power. Do you not know that your bodies are members of
Christ? . . . . You are not your own; . . . . So glorify God in your
body.563
II. DYING IN CHRIST JESUS
1005 To rise with Christ, we must
die with Christ: we must "be away from the body and at home with
the Lord."564 In that "departure" which is
death the soul is separated from the body.565 It will be
reunited with the body on the day of resurrection of the dead.566
Death
1006 "It is in regard to death
that man's condition is most shrouded in doubt."567 In a
sense bodily death is natural, but for faith it is in fact "the
wages of sin."568 For those who die in Christ's grace it
is a participation in the death of the Lord, so that they can also share
his Resurrection.569
1007 Death is the end of earthly
life. Our lives are measured by time, in the course of which we
change, grow old and, as with all living beings on earth, death seems
like the normal end of life. That aspect of death lends urgency to our
lives: remembering our mortality helps us realize that we have only a
limited time in which to bring our lives to fulfillment:
-
Remember also your Creator in the days
of your youth, . . . before the dust returns to the earth as it was,
and the spirit returns to God who gave it.570
1008 Death is a consequence of
sin. The Church's Magisterium, as authentic interpreter of the
affirmations of Scripture and Tradition, teaches that death entered the
world on account of man's sin.571 Even though man's nature is
mortal God had destined him not to die. Death was therefore contrary to
the plans of God the Creator and entered the world as a consequence of
sin.572 "Bodily death, from which man would have been
immune had he not sinned" is thus "the last enemy" of man
left to be conquered.573
1009 Death is transformed by
Christ. Jesus, the Son of God, also himself suffered the death that
is part of the human condition. Yet, despite his anguish as he faced
death, he accepted it in an act of complete and free submission to his
Father's will.574 The obedience of Jesus has transformed the
curse of death into a blessing.575
The meaning of Christian death
1010 Because of Christ, Christian
death has a positive meaning: "For to me to live is Christ, and to
die is gain."576 "The saying is sure: if we have
died with him, we will also live with him.577 What is
essentially new about Christian death is this: through Baptism, the
Christian has already "died with Christ" sacramentally, in
order to live a new life; and if we die in Christ's grace, physical
death completes this "dying with Christ" and so completes our
incorporation into him in his redeeming act:
-
It is better for me to die in (eis)
Christ Jesus than to reign over the ends of the earth. Him it is I
seek - who died for us. Him it is I desire - who rose for us. I am
on the point of giving birth. . . . Let me receive pure light; when
I shall have arrived there, then shall I be a man.578
1011 In death, God calls man to
himself. Therefore the Christian can experience a desire for death like
St. Paul's: "My desire is to depart and be with Christ. "579
He can transform his own death into an act of obedience and love towards
the Father, after the example of Christ:580
-
My earthly desire has been crucified; .
. . there is living water in me, water that murmurs and says within
me: Come to the Father.581
I want to see God and, in order to see
him, I must die.582
I am not dying; I am entering life.583
1012 The Christian vision of death
receives privileged expression in the liturgy of the Church:584
-
Lord, for your faithful people life is
changed, not ended. When the body of our earthly dwelling lies in
death we gain an everlasting dwelling place in heaven.585
1013 Death is the end of man's
earthly pilgrimage, of the time of grace and mercy which God offers him
so as to work out his earthly life in keeping with the divine plan, and
to decide his ultimate destiny. When "the single course of our
earthly life" is completed,586 we shall not return to
other earthly lives: "It is appointed for men to die once."587
There is no "reincarnation" after death.
1014 The Church encourages us to
prepare ourselves for the hour of our death. In the ancient litany of
the saints, for instance, she has us pray: "From a sudden and
unforeseen death, deliver us, O Lord";588 to ask the
Mother of God to intercede for us "at the hour of our death"
in the Hail Mary; and to entrust ourselves to St. Joseph, the
patron of a happy death.
-
Every action of yours, every thought,
should be those of one who expects to die before the day is out.
Death would have no great terrors for you if you had a quiet
conscience. . . . Then why not keep clear of sin instead of running
away from death? If you aren't fit to face death today, it's very
unlikely you will be tomorrow. . . .589
Praised are you, my Lord, for our
sister bodily Death,
from whom no living man can escape.
Woe on those who will die in mortal sin!
Blessed are they who will be found
in your most holy will,
for the second death will not harm them.590
IN BRIEF
1015 "The flesh is the hinge of
salvation" (Tertullian, De res. 8, 2:PL 2, 852). We believe
in God who is creator of the flesh; we believe in the Word made flesh in
order to redeem the flesh; we believe in the resurrection of the flesh,
the fulfillment of both the creation and the redemption of the flesh.
1016 By death the soul is separated
from the body, but in the resurrection God will give incorruptible life
to our body, transformed by reunion with our soul. Just as Christ is
risen and lives for ever, so all of us will rise at the last day.
1017 "We believe in the true
resurrection of this flesh that we now possess" (Council of Lyons
II: DS 854). We sow a corruptible body in the tomb, but he raises up an
incorruptible body, a "spiritual body" (cf. 1 Cor
15:42-44).
1018 As a consequence of original
sin, man must suffer "bodily death, from which man would have been
immune had he not sinned" (GS § 18).
1019 Jesus, the Son of God, freely
suffered death for us in complete and free submission to the will of
God, his Father. By his death he has conquered death, and so opened the
possibility of salvation to all men.
ARTICLE 12
"I BELIEVE IN LIFE EVERLASTING"
1020 The Christian who unites his own death to that
of Jesus views it as a step towards him and an entrance into everlasting
life. When the Church for the last time speaks Christ's words of pardon
and absolution over the dying Christian, seals him for the last time
with a strengthening anointing, and gives him Christ in viaticum as
nourishment for the journey, she speaks with gentle assurance:
-
Go forth, Christian soul, from this world
in the name of God the almighty Father,
who created you,
in the name of Jesus Christ, the Son of the living God,
who suffered for you,
in the name of the Holy Spirit,
who was poured out upon you.
Go forth, faithful Christian!
May you live in peace this day,
may your home be with God in Zion,
with Mary, the virgin Mother of God,
with Joseph, and all the angels and saints. . . .
May you return to [your Creator]
who formed you from the dust of the earth.
May holy Mary, the angels, and all the saints
come to meet you as you go forth from this life. . . .
May you see your Redeemer face to face. 590a
I. THE PARTICULAR JUDGMENT
1021 Death puts an end to human life as the time
open to either accepting or rejecting the divine grace manifested in
Christ.590b The New Testament speaks of judgment primarily in
its aspect of the final encounter with Christ in his second coming, but
also repeatedly affirms that each will be rewarded immediately after
death in accordance with his works and faith. The parable of the poor
man Lazarus and the words of Christ on the cross to the good thief, as
well as other New Testament texts speak of a final destiny of the
soul--a destiny which can be different for some and for others.591
1022 Each man receives his eternal retribution in
his immortal soul at the very moment of his death, in a particular
judgment that refers his life to Christ: either entrance into the
blessedness of heaven-through a purification592 or
immediately,593--or immediate and everlasting damnation.594
-
At the evening of life, we shall be judged on our love.595
II. HEAVEN
1023 Those who die in God's grace and friendship and
are perfectly purified live for ever with Christ. They are like God for
ever, for they "see him as he is," face to face:596
-
By virtue of our apostolic authority, we define the following:
According to the general disposition of God, the souls of all the
saints . . . and other faithful who died after receiving Christ's
holy Baptism (provided they were not in need of purification when
they died, . . . or, if they then did need or will need some
purification, when they have been purified after death, . . .)
already before they take up their bodies again and before the
general judgment - and this since the Ascension of our Lord and
Savior Jesus Christ into heaven - have been, are and will be in
heaven, in the heavenly Kingdom and celestial paradise with Christ,
joined to the company of the holy angels. Since the Passion and
death of our Lord Jesus Christ, these souls have seen and do see the
divine essence with an intuitive vision, and even face to face,
without the mediation of any creature.597
1024 This perfect life with the Most Holy Trinity -
this communion of life and love with the Trinity, with the Virgin Mary,
the angels and all the blessed - is called "heaven." Heaven is
the ultimate end and fulfillment of the deepest human longings, the
state of supreme, definitive happiness.
1025 To live in heaven is "to be with
Christ." The elect live "in Christ,"598 but
they retain, or rather find, their true identity, their own name.599
-
For life is to be with Christ; where Christ is, there is life,
there is the kingdom.600
1026 By his death and Resurrection, Jesus Christ has
"opened" heaven to us. The life of the blessed consists in the
full and perfect possession of the fruits of the redemption accomplished
by Christ. He makes partners in his heavenly glorification those who
have believed in him and remained faithful to his will. Heaven is the
blessed community of all who are perfectly incorporated into Christ.
1027 This mystery of blessed communion with God and
all who are in Christ is beyond all understanding and description.
Scripture speaks of it in images: life, light, peace, wedding feast,
wine of the kingdom, the Father's house, the heavenly Jerusalem,
paradise: "no eye has seen, nor ear heard, nor the heart of man
conceived, what God has prepared for those who love him."601
1028 Because of his transcendence, God cannot be
seen as he is, unless he himself opens up his mystery to man's immediate
contemplation and gives him the capacity for it. The Church calls this
contemplation of God in his heavenly glory "the beatific
vision":
-
How great will your glory and happiness be, to be allowed to see
God, to be honored with sharing the joy of salvation and eternal
light with Christ your Lord and God, . . . to delight in the joy of
immortality in the Kingdom of heaven with the righteous and God's
friends.602
1029 In the glory of heaven the blessed continue
joyfully to fulfill God's will in relation to other men and to all
creation. Already they reign with Christ; with him "they shall
reign for ever and ever."603
III. THE FINAL PURIFICATION, OR PURGATORY
1030 All who die in God's grace and friendship, but
still imperfectly purified, are indeed assured of their eternal
salvation; but after death they undergo purification, so as to achieve
the holiness necessary to enter the joy of heaven.
1031 The Church gives the name Purgatory to
this final purification of the elect, which is entirely different from
the punishment of the damned.604 The Church formulated her
doctrine of faith on Purgatory especially at the Councils of Florence
and Trent. The tradition of the Church, by reference to certain texts of
Scripture, speaks of a cleansing fire:605
-
As for certain lesser faults, we must believe that, before the
Final Judgment, there is a purifying fire. He who is truth says that
whoever utters blasphemy against the Holy Spirit will be pardoned
neither in this age nor in the age to come. From this sentence we
understand that certain offenses can be forgiven in this age, but
certain others in the age to come.606
1032 This teaching is also based on the practice of
prayer for the dead, already mentioned in Sacred Scripture:
"Therefore [Judas Maccabeus] made atonement for the dead, that they
might be delivered from their sin."607 From the
beginning the Church has honored the memory of the dead and offered
prayers in suffrage for them, above all the Eucharistic sacrifice, so
that, thus purified, they may attain the beatific vision of God.608
The Church also commends almsgiving, indulgences, and works of penance
undertaken on behalf of the dead:
-
Let us help and commemorate them. If Job's sons were purified by
their father's sacrifice, why would we doubt that our offerings for
the dead bring them some consolation? Let us not hesitate to help
those who have died and to offer our prayers for them.609
IV. HELL
1033 We cannot be united with God unless we freely
choose to love him. But we cannot love God if we sin gravely against
him, against our neighbor or against ourselves: "He who does not
love remains in death. Anyone who hates his brother is a murderer, and
you know that no murderer has eternal life abiding in him."610
Our Lord warns us that we shall be separated from him if we fail to meet
the serious needs of the poor and the little ones who are his brethren.611
To die in mortal sin without repenting and accepting God's merciful love
means remaining separated from him for ever by our own free choice. This
state of definitive self- exclusion from communion with God and the
blessed is called "hell."
1034 Jesus often speaks of "Gehenna" of
"the unquenchable fire" reserved for those who to the end of
their lives refuse to believe and be converted, where both soul and body
can be lost.612 Jesus solemnly proclaims that he "will
send his angels, and they will gather . . . all evil doers, and throw
them into the furnace of fire,"613 and that he will
pronounce the condemnation: "Depart from me, you cursed, into the
eternal fire!"614
1035 The teaching of the Church affirms the
existence of hell and its eternity. Immediately after death the souls of
those who die in a state of mortal sin descend into hell, where they
suffer the punishments of hell, "eternal fire."615
The chief punishment of hell is eternal separation from God, in whom
alone man can possess the life and happiness for which he was created
and for which he longs.
1036 The affirmations of Sacred Scripture and the
teachings of the Church on the subject of hell are a call to the
responsibility incumbent upon man to make use of his freedom in view of
his eternal destiny. They are at the same time an urgent call to
conversion: "Enter by the narrow gate; for the gate is wide and the
way is easy, that leads to destruction, and those who enter by it are
many. For the gate is narrow and the way is hard, that leads to life,
and those who find it are few."616
-
Since we know neither the day nor the hour, we should follow the
advice of the Lord and watch constantly so that, when the single
course of our earthly life is completed, we may merit to enter with
him into the marriage feast and be numbered among the blessed, and
not, like the wicked and slothful servants, be ordered to depart
into the eternal fire, into the outer darkness where "men will
weep and gnash their teeth."617
1037 God predestines no one to go to hell;618
for this, a willful turning away from God (a mortal sin) is necessary,
and persistence in it until the end. In the Eucharistic liturgy and in
the daily prayers of her faithful, the Church implores the mercy of God,
who does not want "any to perish, but all to come to
repentance":619
-
Father, accept this offering
from your whole family.
Grant us your peace in this life,
save us from final damnation,
and count us among those you have chosen.620
V. THE LAST JUDGMENT
1038 The resurrection of all the dead, "of both
the just and the unjust,"621 will precede the Last
Judgment. This will be "the hour when all who are in the tombs will
hear [the Son of man's] voice and come forth, those who have done good,
to the resurrection of life, and those who have done evil, to the
resurrection of judgment."622 Then Christ will come
"in his glory, and all the angels with him .... Before him will be
gathered all the nations, and he will separate them one from another as
a shepherd separates the sheep from the goats, and he will place the
sheep at his right hand, but the goats at the left.... And they will go
away into eternal punishment, but the righteous into eternal life."623
1039 In the presence of Christ, who is Truth itself,
the truth of each man's relationship with God will be laid bare.624
The Last Judgment will reveal even to its furthest consequences the good
each person has done or failed to do during his earthly life:
-
All that the wicked do is recorded, and they do not know. When
"our God comes, he does not keep silence.". . . he will
turn towards those at his left hand: . . . "I placed my poor
little ones on earth for you. I as their head was seated in heaven
at the right hand of my Father - but on earth my members were
suffering, my members on earth were in need. If you gave anything to
my members, what you gave would reach their Head. Would that you had
known that my little ones were in need when I placed them on earth
for you and appointed them your stewards to bring your good works
into my treasury. But you have placed nothing in their hands;
therefore you have found nothing in my presence."625
1040 The Last Judgment will come when Christ returns
in glory. Only the Father knows the day and the hour; only he determines
the moment of its coming. Then through his Son Jesus Christ he will
pronounce the final word on all history. We shall know the ultimate
meaning of the whole work of creation and of the entire economy of
salvation and understand the marvelous ways by which his Providence led
everything towards its final end. The Last Judgment will reveal that
God's justice triumphs over all the injustices committed by his
creatures and that God's love is stronger than death.626
1041 The message of the Last Judgment calls men to
conversion while God is still giving them "the acceptable time, . .
. the day of salvation."627 It inspires a holy fear of
God and commits them to the justice of the Kingdom of God. It proclaims
the "blessed hope" of the Lord's return, when he will come
"to be glorified in his saints, and to be marveled at in all who
have believed."628
VI. THE HOPE OF THE NEW HEAVEN AND THE NEW EARTH
1042 At the end of time, the Kingdom of God will
come in its fullness. After the universal judgment, the righteous will
reign for ever with Christ, glorified in body and soul. The universe
itself will be renewed:
-
The Church . . . will receive her perfection only in the glory of
heaven, when will come the time of the renewal of all things. At
that time, together with the human race, the universe itself, which
is so closely related to man and which attains its destiny through
him, will be perfectly re-established in Christ.629
1043 Sacred Scripture calls this mysterious renewal,
which will transform humanity and the world, "new heavens and a new
earth."630 It will be the definitive realization of
God's plan to bring under a single head "all things in [Christ],
things in heaven and things on earth."631
1044 In this new universe, the heavenly Jerusalem,
God will have his dwelling among men.632 "He will wipe
away every tear from their eyes, and death shall be no more, neither
shall there be mourning nor crying nor pain any more, for the former
things have passed away."633
1045 For man, this consummation will be the
final realization of the unity of the human race, which God willed from
creation and of which the pilgrim Church has been "in the nature of
sacrament."634 Those who are united with Christ will
form the community of the redeemed, "the holy city" of God,
"the Bride, the wife of the Lamb."635 She will not
be wounded any longer by sin, stains, self-love, that destroy or wound
the earthly community.636 The beatific vision, in which God
opens himself in an inexhaustible way to the elect, will be the
ever-flowing well-spring of happiness, peace, and mutual communion.
1046 For the cosmos, Revelation affirms the
profound common destiny of the material world and man:
-
For the creation waits with eager longing for the revealing of the
sons of God . . . in hope because the creation itself will be set
free from its bondage to decay.... We know that the whole creation
has been groaning in travail together until now; and not only the
creation, but we ourselves, who have the first fruits of the Spirit,
groan inwardly as we wait for adoption as sons, the redemption of
our bodies.637
1047 The visible universe, then, is itself destined
to be transformed, "so that the world itself, restored to its
original state, facing no further obstacles, should be at the service of
the just," sharing their glorification in the risen Jesus Christ.638
1048 "We know neither the moment of the
consummation of the earth and of man, nor the way in which the
universe will be transformed. The form of this world, distorted by sin,
is passing away, and we are taught that God is preparing a new dwelling
and a new earth in which righteousness dwells, in which happiness will
fill and surpass all the desires of peace arising in the hearts of
men."639
1049 "Far from diminishing our concern to
develop this earth, the expectancy of a new earth should spur us on, for
it is here that the body of a new human family grows, foreshadowing in
some way the age which is to come. That is why, although we must be
careful to distinguish earthly progress clearly from the increase of the
kingdom of Christ, such progress is of vital concern to the kingdom of
God, insofar as it can contribute to the better ordering of human
society."640
1050 "When we have spread on earth the fruits
of our nature and our enterprise . . . according to the command of the
Lord and in his Spirit, we will find them once again, cleansed this time
from the stain of sin, illuminated and transfigured, when Christ
presents to his Father an eternal and universal kingdom."641
God will then be "all in all" in eternal life:642
-
True and subsistent life consists in this: the Father, through the
Son and in the Holy Spirit, pouring out his heavenly gifts on all
things without exception. Thanks to his mercy, we too, men that we
are, have received the inalienable promise of eternal life.643
IN BRIEF
1051 Every man receives his eternal recompense in
his immortal soul from the moment of his death in a particular judgment
by Christ, the judge of the living and the dead.
1052 "We believe that the souls of all who die
in Christ's grace . . . are the People of God beyond death. On the day
of resurrection, death will be definitively conquered, when these souls
will be reunited with their bodies" (Paul VI, CPG # 28).
1053 "We believe that the multitude of those
gathered around Jesus and Mary in Paradise forms the Church of heaven,
where in eternal blessedness they see God as he is and where they are
also, to various degrees, associated with the holy angels in the divine
governance exercised by Christ in glory, by interceding for us and
helping our weakness by their fraternal concern" (Paul VI, CPG #
29).
1054 Those who die in God's grace and friendship
imperfectly purified, although they are assured of their eternal
salvation, undergo a purification after death, so as to achieve the
holiness necessary to enter the joy of God.
1055 By virtue of the "communion of
saints," the Church commends the dead to God's mercy and offers her
prayers, especially the holy sacrifice of the Eucharist, on their
behalf.
1056 Following the example of Christ, the Church
warns the faithful of the "sad and lamentable reality of eternal
death" (GCD 69), also called "hell."
1057 Hell's principal punishment consists of eternal
separation from God in whom alone man can have the life and happiness
for which he was created and for which he longs.
1058 The Church prays that no one should be lost:
"Lord, let me never be parted from you." If it is true that no
one can save himself, it is also true that God "desires all men to
be saved" (1 Tim 2:4), and that for him "all things
are possible" (Mt 19:26).
1059 "The holy Roman Church firmly believes and
confesses that on the Day of Judgment all men will appear in their own
bodies before Christ's tribunal to render an account of their own
deeds" (Council of Lyons II [1274]: DS 859; cf. DS 1549).
1060 At the end of time, the Kingdom of God will
come in its fullness. Then the just will reign with Christ for ever,
glorified in body and soul, and the material universe itself will be
transformed. God will then be "all in all" (1 Cor
15:28), in eternal life.
"AMEN"
1061 The Creed, like the last book of the Bible,644
ends with the Hebrew word amen. This word frequently concludes prayers
in the New Testament. The Church likewise ends her prayers with
"Amen."
1062 In Hebrew, amen comes from the same root as the
word "believe." This root expresses solidity, trustworthiness,
faithfulness. And so we can understand why "Amen" may express
both God's faithfulness towards us and our trust in him.
1063 In the book of the prophet Isaiah, we find the
expression "God of truth" (literally "God of the
Amen"), that is, the God who is faithful to his promises: "He
who blesses himself in the land shall bless himself by the God of truth
[amen]."645 Our Lord often used the word
"Amen," sometimes repeated,646 to emphasize the
trustworthiness of his teaching, his authority founded on God's truth.
1064 Thus the Creed's final "Amen" repeats
and confirms its first words: "I believe." To believe is to
say "Amen" to God's words, promises and commandments; to
entrust oneself completely to him who is the "Amen" of
infinite love and perfect faithfulness. The Christian's everyday life
will then be the "Amen" to the "I believe" of our
baptismal profession of faith:
-
May your Creed be for you as a mirror. Look at yourself in it, to
see if you believe everything you say you believe. And rejoice in
your faith each day.647
1065 Jesus Christ himself is the "Amen."648
He is the definitive "Amen" of the Father's love for us. He
takes up and completes our "Amen" to the Father: "For all
the promises of God find their Yes in him. That is why we utter the Amen
through him, to the glory of God":649
-
Through him, with him, in him,
in the unity of the Holy Spirit,
all glory and honor is yours,
almighty Father,
God, for ever and ever.
AMEN.